Khazar Khaganate | |||||||||||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
c. 650–969 | |||||||||||||||
Status | Khaganate | ||||||||||||||
Capital | |||||||||||||||
Common languages | |||||||||||||||
Religion | |||||||||||||||
Qaghan | |||||||||||||||
• c. 650 | Irbis | ||||||||||||||
• 8th century | Bulan | ||||||||||||||
• 9th century | Obadiah | ||||||||||||||
• 9th century | Zachariah | ||||||||||||||
• 9th century | Manasseh | ||||||||||||||
• 9th century | Benjamin | ||||||||||||||
• 10th century | Aaron | ||||||||||||||
• 10th century | Joseph | ||||||||||||||
• 10th century | David | ||||||||||||||
• 11th century | Georgios | ||||||||||||||
Historical era | Middle Ages | ||||||||||||||
• Established | c. 650 | ||||||||||||||
969 | |||||||||||||||
Area | |||||||||||||||
850 est.[4] | 3,000,000 km2 (1,200,000 sq mi) | ||||||||||||||
900 est.[5] | 1,000,000 km2 (390,000 sq mi) | ||||||||||||||
Currency | Yarmaq | ||||||||||||||
|
History of the Turkic peoples pre–14th century |
---|
|
|
History of Tatarstan |
---|
The Khazars[a] (/ˈxɑːzɑːrz/) were a semi-nomadic Turkic people that in the late 6th-century CE established a major commercial empire covering the southeastern section of modern European Russia, southern Ukraine, Crimea, and Kazakhstan.[10] They created what for its duration was the most powerful polity to emerge from the break-up of the Western Turkic Khaganate.[11] Astride a major artery of commerce between Eastern Europe and Southwestern Asia, Khazaria became one of the foremost trading empires of the early medieval world, commanding the western marches of the Silk Road and playing a key commercial role as a crossroad between China, the Middle East and Kievan Rus'.[12][13] For some three centuries (c. 650–965) the Khazars dominated the vast area extending from the Volga-Don steppes to the eastern Crimea and the northern Caucasus.[14]
Khazaria long served as a buffer state between the Byzantine Empire and both the nomads of the northern steppes and the Umayyad Caliphate and Abbasid Caliphate, after serving as the Byzantine Empire's proxy against the Sasanian Empire. The alliance was dropped around 900. Byzantium began to encourage the Alans to attack Khazaria and to weaken its hold on Crimea and the Caucasus and sought to obtain an entente with the rising Rus' power to the north, which it aspired to convert to Christianity.[15] Between 965 and 969, the Kievan Rus' ruler, Sviatoslav I of Kiev, as well as his allies, conquered the capital, Atil, and ended Khazaria's independence. The state became the autonomous entity of Rus' and then of Khazar former provinces (Khwarazm in which Khazars were known as Turks, just as Hungarians were known as Turks in Byzantium) in Volga Bulgaria.
Determining the origins and nature of the Khazars is closely bound with theories of their languages, but it is a matter of intricate difficulty since no indigenous records in the Khazar language survive, and the state was polyglot and polyethnic. The native religion of the Khazars is thought to have been Tengrism, like that of the North Caucasian Huns and other Turkic peoples.[16] The polyethnic populace of the Khazar Khaganate appears to have been a multiconfessional mosaic of pagan, Tengrist, Jewish, Christian and Muslim worshippers.[17] Some of the Khazars (i.e., Kabars) joined the ancient Hungarians in the 9th century. The ruling elite of the Khazars was said by Judah Halevi and Abraham ibn Daud to have converted to Rabbinic Judaism in the 8th century,[18] but the scope of the conversion to Judaism within the Khazar Khanate remains uncertain.[19]
Where the Khazars dispersed after the fall of the Empire is subject to many conjectures. Proposals have been made regarding the possibility of a Khazar factor in the ethnogenesis of numerous peoples, such as the Hazaras, Hungarians, the Kazakhs, the Cossacks of the Don region and of Ukraine, Bukharan Jews, the Muslim Kumyks, the Turkic-speaking Krymchaks and their Crimean neighbours the Crimean Karaites, the Moldavian Csángós, the Mountain Jews, even some Subbotniks (on the basis of their Ukrainian and Cossack origin and others).[20][21][22] The late 19th century saw the emergence of the theory that the core of today's Ashkenazi Jews are descended from a hypothetical Khazarian Jewish diaspora which migrated westward from modern-day Russia and Ukraine into modern-day France and Germany. Linguistic and genetic studies have not supported the theory of a Khazar connection to Ashkenazi Jewry. The theory still finds occasional support, but most scholars view it with considerable scepticism.[23][19] The theory is sometimes associated with antisemitism[24] and anti-Zionism.[25]
Etymology
Gyula Németh, following Zoltán Gombocz, derived Khazar from a hypothetical *Qasar reflecting a Turkic root qaz- ("to ramble, to roam") being an hypothetical retracted variant of Common Turkic kez-;[26] however, András Róna-Tas objected that *qaz- is a ghost word.[27] In the fragmentary Tes and Terkhin inscriptions of the Uyğur empire (744–840) the form Qasar is attested, although uncertainty remains whether this represents a personal or tribal name, gradually other hypotheses emerged. Louis Bazin derived it from Turkic qas- ("tyrannize, oppress, terrorize") on the basis of its phonetic similarity to the Uyğur tribal name, Qasar.[note 3] Róna-Tas connects qasar with Kesar, the Pahlavi transcription of the Roman title Caesar.[note 4]
D. M. Dunlop tried to link the Chinese term for "Khazars" to one of the tribal names of the Uyğur, or Toquz Oğuz, namely the Qasar (Ch. 葛薩 Gésà).[28][29] The objections are that Uyğur 葛薩 Gésà/Qasar was not a tribal name but rather the surname of the chief of the 思结 Sijie tribe (Sogdian: Sikari) of the Toquz Oğuz (Ch. 九姓 jĭu xìng),[note 5] and that in Middle Chinese the ethnonym "Khazars" was always prefaced with Tūjué, then still reserved for Göktürks and their splinter groups,[40] (Tūjué Kěsà bù:突厥可薩部; Tūjué Hésà:突厥曷薩) and "Khazar"'s first syllable is transcribed with different characters (可 and 曷) than 葛, which is used to render the syllable Qa- in the Uyğur word Qasar.[note 6][42][43]
After their conversion it is reported that they adopted the Hebrew script,[note 7] and it is likely that, although speaking a Turkic language, the Khazar chancellery under Judaism probably corresponded in Hebrew.[note 8]
Linguistics
Determining the origins and nature of the Khazars is closely bound with theories of their languages, but it is a matter of intricate difficulty since no indigenous records in the Khazar language survive, and the state was polyglot and polyethnic.[note 9][note 10] Whereas the royal or ruling elite probably spoke an eastern variety of Shaz Turkic, the subject tribes appear to have spoken varieties of Lir Turkic, such as Oğuric, a language variously identified with Bulğaric, Chuvash, and Hunnish (the latter based upon the assertion of the Persian historian al-Iṣṭakhrī that the Khazar language was different from any other known tongue.[note 11][note 12] One method for tracing their origins consists in the analysis of the possible etymologies behind the ethnonym "Khazar".
History
Tribal origins and early history
The tribes[note 13] that were to comprise the Khazar empire were not an ethnic union, but a congeries of steppe nomads and peoples who came to be subordinated, and subscribed to a core Turkic leadership.[44] Many Turkic groups, such as the Oğuric peoples, including Šarağurs, Oğurs, Onoğurs, and Bulğars who earlier formed part of the Tiele (Tiělè) confederation, are attested quite early, having been driven West by the Sabirs, who in turn fled the Asian Avars, and began to flow into the Volga-Caspian-Pontic zone from as early as the 4th century CE and are recorded by Priscus to reside in the Western Eurasian steppe lands as early as 463.[45][46] They appear to stem from Mongolia and South Siberia in the aftermath of the fall of the Hunnic/Xiōngnú nomadic polities. A variegated tribal federation led by these Turks, probably comprising a complex assortment of Iranian,[note 14] proto-Mongolic, Uralic, and Palaeo-Siberian clans, vanquished the Rouran Khaganate of the hegemonic central Asian Avars in 552 and swept westwards, taking in their train other steppe nomads and peoples from Sogdiana.[47]
The ruling family of this confederation may have hailed from the Āshǐnà (阿史那) clan of the Western Turkic Khaganate,[48][49][50] although Constantine Zuckerman regards Ashina and their pivotal role in the formation of the Khazars with scepticism.[note 15] Golden notes that Chinese and Arabic reports are almost identical, making the connection a strong one, and conjectures that their leader may have been Yǐpíshèkuì (Chinese:乙毗射匱), who lost power or was killed around 651.[51] Moving west, the confederation reached the land of the Akatziroi,[note 16] who had been important allies of Byzantium in fighting off Attila's army.
Rise of the Khazar state
An embryonic state of Khazaria began to form sometime after 630,[52][53] when it emerged from the breakdown of the larger Göktürk Khaganate. Göktürk armies had penetrated the Volga by 549, ejecting the Avars, who were then forced to flee to the sanctuary of the Hungarian plain. The Ashina clan appeared on the scene by 552, when they overthrew the Rourans and established the Göktürk Qağanate, whose self designation was Tür(ü)k.[note 17] By 568, these Göktürks were probing for an alliance with Byzantium to attack Persia. An internecine war broke out between the senior eastern Göktürks and the junior West Turkic Khaganate some decades later, when on the death of Taspar Qağan, a succession dispute led to a dynastic crisis between Taspar's chosen heir, the Apa Qağan, and the ruler appointed by the tribal high council, Āshǐnà Shètú (阿史那摄图), the Ishbara Qağan.
By the first decades of the 7th century, the Ashina yabgu Tong managed to stabilise the Western division, but upon his death, after providing crucial military assistance to Byzantium in routing the Sasanian army in the Persian heartland,[54][55] the Western Turkic Qağanate dissolved under pressure from the encroaching Tang dynasty armies and split into two competing federations, each consisting of five tribes, collectively known as the "Ten Arrows" (On Oq). Both briefly challenged Tang hegemony in eastern Turkestan. To the West, two new nomadic states arose in the meantime, Old Great Bulgaria under Kubrat, the Duōlù clan leader, and the Nǔshībì subconfederation, also consisting of five tribes.[note 18] The Duōlù challenged the Avars in the Kuban River-Sea of Azov area while the Khazar Qağanate consolidated further westwards, led apparently by an Ashina dynasty. With a resounding victory over the tribes in 657, engineered by General Sū Dìngfāng (蘇定方), Chinese overlordship was imposed to their East after a final mop-up operation in 659, but the two confederations of Bulğars and Khazars fought for supremacy on the western steppeland, and with the ascendency of the latter, the former either succumbed to Khazar rule or, as under Asparukh, Kubrat's son, shifted even further west across the Danube to lay the foundations of the First Bulgarian Empire in the Balkans (c. 679).[56][57]
The Qağanate of the Khazars thus took shape out of the ruins of this nomadic empire as it broke up under pressure from the Tang dynasty armies to the east sometime between 630 and 650.[51] After their conquest of the lower Volga region to the East and an area westwards between the Danube and the Dniepr, and their subjugation of the Onoğur-Bulğar union, sometime around 670, a properly constituted Khazar Qağanate emerges,[58] becoming the westernmost successor state of the formidable Göktürk Qağanate after its disintegration. According to Omeljan Pritsak, the language of the Onoğur-Bulğar federation was to become the lingua franca of Khazaria[59] as it developed into what Lev Gumilev called a "steppe Atlantis" (stepnaja Atlantida/ Степная Атлантида).[60] Historians have often referred to this period of Khazar domination as the Pax Khazarica since the state became an international trading hub permitting Western Eurasian merchants safe transit across it to pursue their business without interference.[61] The high status soon to be accorded this empire to the north is attested by Ibn al-Balḫî's Fârsnâma (c. 1100), which relates that the Sasanian Shah, Ḫusraw 1, Anûsîrvân, placed three thrones by his own, one for the King of China, a second for the King of Byzantium, and a third for the king of the Khazars. Although anachronistic in retrodating the Khazars to this period, the legend, in placing the Khazar qağan on a throne with equal status to kings of the other two superpowers, bears witness to the reputation won by the Khazars from early times.[62][63]
Khazar state: culture and institutions
Royal Diarchy with sacral Qağanate
Khazaria developed a Dual kingship governance structure,[note 19] typical among Turkic nomads, consisting of a shad/bäk and a qağan.[64] The emergence of this system may be deeply entwined with the conversion to Judaism.[65] According to Arabic sources, the lesser king was called îšâ and the greater king Khazar xâqân; the former managed and commanded the military, while the greater king's role was primarily sacral, less concerned with daily affairs. The greater king was recruited from the Khazar house of notables (ahl bait ma'rûfīn) and, in an initiation ritual, was nearly strangled until he declared the number of years he wished to reign, on the expiration of which he would be killed by the nobles.[note 20][66][67][note 21] The deputy ruler would enter the presence of the reclusive greater king only with great ceremony, approaching him barefoot to prostrate himself in the dust and then light a piece of wood as a purifying fire, while waiting humbly and calmly to be summoned.[68] Particularly elaborate rituals accompanied a royal burial. At one period, travellers had to dismount, bow before the ruler's tomb, and then walk away on foot.[69] Subsequently, the charismatic sovereign's burial place was hidden from view, with a palatial structure ("Paradise") constructed and then hidden under rerouted river water to avoid disturbance by evil spirits and later generations. Such a royal burial ground (qoruq) is typical of inner Asian peoples.[70] Both the îšâ and the xâqân converted to Judaism sometime in the 8th century, while the rest, according to the Persian traveller Ahmad ibn Rustah, probably followed the old Tūrkic religion.[71][note 22]
Ruling elite
The ruling stratum, like that of the later Činggisids within the Golden Horde, was a relatively small group that differed ethnically and linguistically from its subject peoples, meaning the Alano-As and Oğuric Turkic tribes, who were numerically superior within Khazaria.[72] The Khazar Qağans, while taking wives and concubines from the subject populations, were protected by a Khwârazmian guard corps, or comitatus, called the Ursiyya.[note 23][note 24] But unlike many other local polities, they hired soldiers (mercenaries) (the junûd murtazîqa in al-Mas'ûdî).[73] At the peak of their empire, the Khazars ran a centralised fiscal administration, with a standing army of some 7–12,000 men, which could, at need, be multiplied two or three times that number by inducting reserves from their nobles' retinues.[74][note 25] Other figures for the permanent standing army indicate that it numbered as many as one hundred thousand. They controlled and exacted tribute from 25 to 30 different nations and tribes inhabiting the vast territories between the Caucasus, the Aral Sea, the Ural Mountains, and the Ukrainian steppes.[75] Khazar armies were led by the Qağan Bek (pronounced as Kagan Bek) and commanded by subordinate officers known as tarkhans. When the bek sent out a body of troops, they would not retreat under any circumstances. If they were defeated, every one who returned was killed.[76]
Settlements were governed by administrative officials known as tuduns. In some cases, such as the Byzantine settlements in southern Crimea, a tudun would be appointed for a town nominally within another polity's sphere of influence. Other officials in the Khazar government included dignitaries referred to by ibn Fadlan as Jawyshyghr and Kündür, but their responsibilities are unknown.
Demographics
It has been estimated that 25 to 28 distinct ethnic groups made up the population of the Khazar Qağanate, aside from the ethnic elite. The ruling elite seems to have been constituted out of nine tribes/clans, themselves ethnically heterogeneous, spread over perhaps nine provinces or principalities, each of which would have been allocated to a clan.[66] In terms of caste or class, some evidence suggests that there was a distinction, whether racial or social is unclear, between "White Khazars" (ak-Khazars) and "Black Khazars" (qara-Khazars).[66] The 10th-century Muslim geographer al-Iṣṭakhrī claimed that the White Khazars were strikingly handsome with reddish hair, white skin, and blue eyes, while the Black Khazars were swarthy, verging on deep black as if they were "some kind of Indian".[77] Many Turkic nations had a similar (political, not racial) division between a "white" ruling warrior caste and a "black" class of commoners; the consensus among mainstream scholars is that Istakhri was confused by the names given to the two groups.[78] However, Khazars are generally described by early Arab sources as having a white complexion, blue eyes, and reddish hair.[79][80] The ethnonym in the Tang Chinese annals, Ashina, often accorded a key role in the Khazar leadership, may reflect an Eastern Iranian or Tokharian word (Khotanese Saka âşşeina-āššsena "blue"): Middle Persian axšaêna ("dark-coloured"): Tokharian A âśna ("blue", "dark").[6] The distinction appears to have survived the collapse of the Khazarian empire. Later Russian chronicles, commenting on the role of the Khazars in the magyarisation of Hungary, refer to them as "White Oghurs" and Magyars as "Black Oghurs".[81] Studies of the physical remains, such as skulls at Sarkel, have revealed a mixture of Slavic, other European, and a few Mongolian types.[78]
Economy
The import and export of foreign wares, and the revenues derived from taxing their transit, was a hallmark of the Khazar economy, although it is said also to have produced isinglass.[82] Distinctively among the nomadic steppe polities, the Khazar Qağanate developed a self-sufficient domestic Saltovo[83] economy, a combination of traditional pastoralism – allowing sheep and cattle to be exported – extensive agriculture, abundant use of the Volga's rich fishing stocks, together with craft manufacture, with diversification in lucrative returns from taxing international trade given its pivotal control of major trade routes.
The Khazars constituted one of the two great furnishers of slaves to the Muslim market (the other being the Iranian Sâmânid amîrs), supplying it with captured Slavs and tribesmen from the Eurasian northlands.[84] It profited from the latter which enabled it to maintain a standing army of Khwarezm Muslim troops. The capital Atil reflected the division: Kharazān on the western bank where the king and his Khazar elite, with a retinue of some 4,000 attendants, dwelt, and Itil proper to the East, inhabited by Jews, Christians, Muslims and slaves and by craftsmen and foreign merchants.[note 26]
The ruling elite wintered in the city and spent from spring to late autumn in their fields. A large irrigated greenbelt, drawing on channels from the Volga river, lay outside the capital, where meadows and vineyards extended for some 20 farsakhs (c. 60 miles).[85] While customs duties were imposed on traders, and tribute and tithes were exacted from 25 to 30 tribes, with a levy of one sable skin, squirrel pelt, sword, dirham per hearth or ploughshare, or hides, wax, honey and livestock, depending on the zone. Trade disputes were handled by a commercial tribunal in Atil consisting of seven judges, two for each of the monotheistic inhabitants (Jews, Muslims, Christians) and one for the pagans.[note 27]
Khazars and Byzantium
Byzantine diplomatic policy towards the steppe peoples generally consisted of encouraging them to fight among themselves. The Pechenegs provided great assistance to the Byzantines in the 9th century in exchange for regular payments.[86] Byzantium also sought alliances with the Göktürks against common enemies: in the early 7th century, one such alliance was brokered with the Western Tűrks against the Persian Sasanians in the Byzantine–Sasanian War of 602–628. The Byzantines called Khazaria Tourkía, and by the 9th century referred to the Khazars as "Turks".[note 28] During the period leading up to and after the siege of Constantinople in 626, Heraclius sought help via emissaries, and eventually personally, from a Göktürk chieftain[note 29] of the Western Turkic Khaganate, Tong Yabghu Qağan, in Tiflis, plying him with gifts and the promise of marriage to his daughter, Epiphania.[89] Tong Yabghu responded by sending a large force to ravage the Persian empire, marking the start of the Third Perso-Turkic War.[90] A joint Byzantine-Tűrk operation breached the Caspian gates and sacked Derbent in 627. Together they then besieged Tiflis, where the Byzantines may have deployed an early variety of traction trebuchets (ἑλέπόλεις) to breach the walls. After the campaign, Tong Yabghu is reported, perhaps with some exaggeration, to have left some 40,000 troops behind with Heraclius.[91] Although occasionally identified with Khazars, the Göktürk identification is more probable since the Khazars only emerged from that group after the fragmentation of the former sometime after 630.[52][53] Some scholars argued that Sasanian Persia never recovered from the devastating defeat wrought by this invasion.[note 30]
Once the Khazars emerged as a power, the Byzantines also began to form alliances with them, dynastic and military. In 695, the last Heraclian emperor, Justinian II, nicknamed "the slit-nosed" (ὁ ῥινότμητος) after he was mutilated and deposed, was exiled to Cherson in the Crimea, where a Khazar governor (tudun) presided. He escaped into Khazar territory in 704 or 705 and was given asylum by qağan Busir Glavan (Ἰβουζῆρος Γλιαβάνος), who gave him his sister in marriage, perhaps in response to an offer by Justinian, who may have thought a dynastic marriage would seal by kinship a powerful tribal support for his attempts to regain the throne.[92] The Khazarian spouse thereupon changed her name to Theodora.[93] Busir was offered a bribe by the Byzantine usurper, Tiberius III, to kill Justinian. Warned by Theodora, Justinian escaped, murdering two Khazar officials in the process. He fled to Bulgaria, whose Khan Tervel helped him regain the throne. Upon his reinstalment, and despite Busir's treachery during his exile, he sent for Theodora; Busir complied, and she was crowned as Augusta, suggesting that both prized the alliance.[94][95]
Decades later, Leo III (ruled 717–741) made a similar alliance to co-ordinate strategy against a common enemy, the Muslim Arabs. He sent an embassy to the Khazar qağan Bihar and married his son, the future Constantine V (ruled 741–775), to Bihar's daughter, a princess referred to as Tzitzak, in 732. On converting to Christianity, she took the name Irene. Constantine and Irene had a son, the future Leo IV (775–780), who thereafter bore the sobriquet, "the Khazar".[96][97] Leo died in mysterious circumstances after his Athenian wife bore him a son, Constantine VI, who on his majority co-ruled with his mother, the dowager. He proved unpopular, and his death ended the dynastic link of the Khazars to the Byzantine throne.[98][96] By the 8th century, Khazars dominated the Crimea (650–c. 950), and even extended their influence into the Byzantine peninsula of Cherson until it was wrested back in the 10th century.[99] Khazar and Farghânian (Φάργανοι) mercenaries constituted part of the imperial Byzantine Hetaireia bodyguard after its formation in 840, a position that could openly be purchased by a payment of seven pounds of gold.[100][101]
Arab–Khazar wars
During the 7th and 8th centuries, the Khazars fought a series of wars against the Umayyad Caliphate and its Abbasid successor. The First Arab-Khazar War began during the first phase of Muslim expansion. By 640, Muslim forces had reached Armenia; in 642 they launched their first raid across the Caucasus under Abd ar-Rahman ibn Rabiah. In 652 Arab forces advanced on the Khazar capital, Balanjar, but were defeated, suffering heavy losses; according to Persian historians such as al-Tabari, both sides in the battle used catapults against the opposing troops. A number of Russian sources give the name of a Khazar khagan from this period as Irbis and describe him as a scion of the Göktürk royal house, the Ashina. Whether Irbis ever existed is open to debate, as is whether he can be identified with one of the many Göktürk rulers of the same name.
Due to the outbreak of the First Muslim Civil War and other priorities, the Arabs refrained from repeating an attack on the Khazars until the early 8th century.[102] The Khazars launched a few raids into Transcaucasian principalities under Muslim dominion, including a large-scale raid in 683–685 during the Second Muslim Civil War that rendered much booty and many prisoners.[103] There is evidence from the account of al-Tabari that the Khazars formed a united front with the remnants of the Göktürks in Transoxiana.
The Second Arab-Khazar War began with a series of raids across the Caucasus in the early 8th century. The Umayyads tightened their grip on Armenia in 705 after suppressing a large-scale rebellion. In 713 or 714, the Umayyad general Maslamah conquered Derbent and drove deeper into Khazar territory. The Khazars launched raids in response into Albania and Iranian Azerbaijan but were driven back by the Arabs under Hasan ibn al-Nu'man.[104] The conflict escalated in 722 with an invasion by 30,000 Khazars into Armenia inflicting a crushing defeat. Caliph Yazid II responded, sending 25,000 Arab troops north, swiftly driving the Khazars back across the Caucasus, recovering Derbent, and advancing on Balanjar. The Arabs broke through the Khazar defence and stormed the city; most of its inhabitants were killed or enslaved, but a few of them managed to flee north.[103] Despite their success, the Arabs had not yet defeated the Khazar army, and they retreated south of the Caucasus.
In 724, the Arab general al-Jarrah ibn Abdallah al-Hakami inflicted a crushing defeat on the Khazars in a long battle between the rivers Cyrus and Araxes, then moved on to capture Tiflis, bringing Caucasian Iberia under Muslim suzerainty. The Khazars struck back in 726, led by a prince named Barjik, launching a major invasion of Albania and Azerbaijan; by 729, the Arabs had lost control of northeastern Transcaucasia and were thrust again into the defensive. In 730, Barjik invaded Iranian Azerbaijan and defeated Arab forces at Ardabil, killing the general al-Djarrah al-Hakami and briefly occupying the town. Barjik was defeated and killed the next year at Mosul, where he directed Khazar forces from a throne mounted with al-Djarrah's severed head[citation needed]. In 737, Marwan Ibn Muhammad entered Khazar territory under the guise of seeking a truce. He then launched a surprise attack in which The Qaghan fled north and the Khazars surrendered.[105] The Arabs did not have enough resources to influence the affairs of Transcaucasia.[105] The Qağan was forced to accept terms involving his conversion to Islam, and subject himself to the rule of the Caliphate, but the accommodation was short-lived because a combination of internal instability among the Umayyads and Byzantine support undid the agreement within three years, and the Khazars re-asserted their independence.[106] The suggestion that the Khazars adopted Judaism as early as 740 is based on the idea that, in part, it was, a re-assertion of their independence from the rule of both regional powers, Byzantium and the Caliphate, while it also conformed to a general Eurasian trend to embrace a world religion.[note 31]
Whatever the impact of Marwan's campaigns was, warfare between the Khazars and the Arabs ceased for more than two decades after 737. Arab raids continued to occur until 741, but their control of the region was limited because maintaining a large garrison at Derbent further depleted their already overstretched army. A third Muslim civil war soon broke out, leading to the Abbasid Revolution and the fall of the Umayyad dynasty in 750.
In 758, the Abbasid Caliph al-Mansur attempted to strengthen diplomatic ties with the Khazars, ordering Yazid ibn Usayd al-Sulami, one of his nobles and the military governor of Armenia, to take a royal Khazar bride. Yazid married a daughter of Khazar Khagan Baghatur, but she died inexplicably, possibly during childbirth. Her attendants returned home, convinced that some members of another Arab faction had poisoned her, and her father was enraged. the Khazar general Ras Tarkhan invaded regions which were located south of the Caucasus in 762–764, devastating Albania, Armenia, and Iberia, and capturing Tiflis. Thereafter, relations between the Khazars and the Abbasids became increasingly cordial, because the foreign policies of the Abbasids were generally less expansionist than the foreign policies of the Umayyads, relations between the Khazars and the Abbasids were ultimately broken by a series of raids which occurred in 799, the raids occurred after another marriage alliance failed.
Khazars and Hungarians
Around 830, a rebellion broke out in the Khazar khaganate. As a result, three Kabar tribes[107] of the Khazars (probably the majority of ethnic Khazars) joined the Hungarians and moved through Levedia to what the Hungarians call the Etelköz, the territory between the Carpathians and the Dnieper River. The Hungarians faced their first attack by the Pechenegs around 854,[108] though other sources state that an attack by Pechenegs was the reason for their departure to Etelköz. The new neighbours of the Hungarians were the Varangians and the eastern Slavs. From 862 onwards, the Hungarians (already referred to as the Ungri) along with their allies, the Kabars, started a series of raids from the Etelköz into the Carpathian Basin, mostly against the Eastern Frankish Empire (Germany) and Great Moravia, but also against the Lower Pannonian principality and Bulgaria. Then they together ended up at the outer slopes of Carpathians, and settled there, where the majority of Khazars converted from Judaism to Christianity in the 10th to 13th centuries. There could be shamanists and Christians among these Khazars apart from Jews.[109][better source needed]
Rise of the Rus' and the collapse of the Khazarian state
By the 9th century, groups of Varangian Rus', developing a powerful warrior-merchant system, began probing south down the waterways controlled by the Khazars and their protectorate, the Volga Bulgarians, partially in pursuit of the Arab silver that flowed north for hoarding through the Khazarian-Volga Bulgarian trading zones,[note 32] partially to trade in furs and ironwork.[note 33] Northern mercantile fleets passing Atil were tithed, as they were at Byzantine Cherson.[110] Their presence may have prompted the formation of a Rus' state by convincing the Slavs, Merja and the Chud' to unite to protect common interests against Khazarian exactions of tribute. It is often argued that a Rus' Khaganate modelled on the Khazarian state had formed to the east and that the Varangian chieftain of the coalition appropriated the title of qağan (khagan) as early as the 830s: the title survived to denote the princes of Kievan Rus', whose capital, Kyiv, is often associated with a Khazarian foundation.[111][112][note 34][note 35] The construction of the Sarkel fortress, with technical assistance from Khazaria's Byzantine ally at the time, together with the minting of an autonomous Khazar coinage around the 830s, may have been a defensive measure against emerging threats from Varangians to the north and from the Magyars on the eastern steppe.[note 36][note 37] By 860, the Rus' had penetrated as far as Kyiv and, via the Dnieper, Constantinople.[116]
Alliances often shifted. Byzantium, threatened by Varangian Rus' raiders, would assist Khazaria, and Khazaria at times allowed the northerners to pass through their territory in exchange for a portion of the booty.[117] From the beginning of the 10th century, the Khazars found themselves fighting on multiple fronts as nomadic incursions were exacerbated by uprisings by former clients and invasions from former allies. The pax Khazarica was caught in a pincer movement between steppe Pechenegs and the strengthening of an emergent Rus' power to the north, both undermining Khazaria's tributary empire.[118] According to the Schechter Text, the Khazar ruler King Benjamin (ca.880–890) fought a battle against the allied forces of five lands whose moves were perhaps encouraged by Byzantium.[note 38] Although Benjamin was victorious, his son Aaron II faced another invasion, this time led by the Alans, whose leader had converted to Christianity and entered into an alliance with Byzantium, which, under Leo VI the Wise, encouraged them to fight against the Khazars.
By the 880s, Khazar control of the Middle Dnieper from Kyiv, where they collected tribute from Eastern Slavic tribes, began to wane as Oleg of Novgorod wrested control of the city from the Varangian warlords Askold and Dir, and embarked on what was to prove to be the foundation of a Rus' empire.[119] The Khazars had initially allowed the Rus' to use the trade route along the Volga River, and raid southwards. See Caspian expeditions of the Rus'. According to Al-Mas'udi, the qağan is said to have given his assent on the condition that the Rus' give him half of the booty.[117] In 913, however, two years after Byzantium concluded a peace treaty with the Rus' in 911, a Varangian foray, with Khazar connivance, through Arab lands led to a request to the Khazar throne by the Khwârazmian Islamic guard for permission to retaliate against the large Rus' contingent on its return. The purpose was to revenge the violence the Rus' razzias had inflicted on their fellow Muslim believers.[note 39] The Rus' force was thoroughly routed and massacred.[117] The Khazar rulers closed the passage down the Volga to the Rus', sparking a war. In the early 960s, Khazar ruler Joseph wrote to Hasdai ibn Shaprut about the deterioration of Khazar relations with the Rus': "I protect the mouth of the river (Itil-Volga) and prevent the Rus arriving in their ships from setting off by sea against the Ishmaelites and (equally) all (their) enemies from setting off by land to Bab."[note 40]
The Rus' warlords launched several wars against the Khazar Qağanate, and raided down to the Caspian sea. The Schechter Letter relates the story of a campaign against Khazaria by HLGW (recently identified as Oleg of Chernigov) around 941 in which Oleg was defeated by the Khazar general Pesakh.[120] The Khazar alliance with the Byzantine empire began to collapse in the early 10th century. Byzantine and Khazar forces may have clashed in the Crimea, and by the 940s emperor Constantine VII Porphyrogenitus was speculating in De Administrando Imperio about ways in which the Khazars could be isolated and attacked. The Byzantines during the same period began to attempt alliances with the Pechenegs and the Rus', with varying degrees of success. A further factor undermining the Khazar Qağanate was a shift in Islamic routes at this time, as Muslims in Khwarazmia forged trade links with the recently converted Volga Bulgarian Muslims, a move which may have caused a drastic drop, perhaps up to 80%, in the revenue base of Khazaria, and consequently, a crisis in its ability to pay for its defence.[121]
Sviatoslav I finally succeeded in destroying Khazar imperial power in the 960s, in a circular sweep that overwhelmed Khazar fortresses like Sarkel and Tamatarkha, and reached as far as the Caucasian Kassogians/Circassians[note 42] and then back to Kyiv.[122] Sarkel fell in 965, with the capital city of Atil following, c. 968 or 969.
In the Russian chronicle, the vanquishing of the Khazar traditions is associated with Vladimir's conversion in 986.[123] According to the Primary Chronicle, in 986 Khazar Jews were present at Vladimir's disputation to decide on the prospective religion of the Kievan Rus'.[124] Whether these were Jews who had settled in Kyiv or emissaries from some Jewish Khazar remnant state is unclear. Conversion to one of the faiths of the people of Scripture was a precondition to any peace treaty with the Arabs, whose Bulgar envoys had arrived in Kyiv after 985.[125]
A visitor to Atil wrote soon after the sacking of the city that its vineyards and garden had been razed, that not a grape or raisin remained in the land, and not even alms for the poor were available.[126] An attempt to rebuild may have been undertaken, since Ibn Hawqal and al-Muqaddasi refer to it after that date, but by Al-Biruni's time (1048) it was in ruins.[note 43]
Aftermath: impact, decline and dispersion
Although Poliak argued that the Khazar kingdom did not wholly succumb to Sviatoslav's campaign, but lingered on until 1224, when the Mongols invaded Rus',[127][128] by most accounts, the Rus'-Oghuz campaigns left Khazaria devastated, with perhaps many Khazarian Jews in flight,[129] and leaving behind at best a minor rump state. It left little trace, except for some placenames,[note 44] and much of its population was undoubtedly absorbed in successor hordes.[130] Al-Muqaddasi, writing ca.985, mentions Khazar beyond the Caspian sea as a district of "woe and squalor", with honey, many sheep and Jews.[131] Kedrenos mentions a joint Rus'-Byzantine attack on Khazaria in 1016, which defeated its ruler Georgius Tzul. The name suggests Christian affiliations. The account concludes by saying, that after Tzul's defeat, the Khazar ruler of "upper Media", Senaccherib, had to sue for peace and submission.[132] In 1024 Mstislav of Chernigov (one of Vladimir's sons) marched against his brother Yaroslav with an army that included "Khazars and Kassogians" in a repulsed attempt to restore a kind of "Khazarian"-type dominion over Kyiv.[122] Ibn al-Athir's mention of a "raid of Faḍlūn the Kurd against the Khazars" in 1030 CE, in which 10,000 of his men were vanquished by the latter, has been taken as a reference to such a Khazar remnant, but Barthold identified this Faḍlūn as Faḍl ibn Muḥammad and the "Khazars" as either Georgians or Abkhazians.[133][134] A Kievian prince named Oleg, grandson of Jaroslav was reportedly kidnapped by "Khazars" in 1079 and shipped off to Constantinople, although most scholars believe that this is a reference to the Cumans-Kipchaks or other steppe peoples then dominant in the Pontic region. Upon his conquest of Tmutarakan in the 1080s Oleg Sviatoslavich, son of a prince of Chernigov, gave himself the title "Archon of Khazaria".[122] In 1083 Oleg is said to have exacted revenge on the Khazars after his brother Roman was killed by their allies, the Polovtsi/Cumans. After one more conflict with these Polovtsi in 1106, the Khazars fade from history.[132] By the 13th century they survived in Russian folklore only as "Jewish heroes" in the "land of the Jews". (zemlya Jidovskaya).[135]
By the end of the 12th century, Petachiah of Ratisbon reported travelling through what he called "Khazaria", and had little to remark on other than describing its minim (sectaries) living amidst desolation in perpetual mourning.[136] The reference seems to be to Karaites.[137] The Franciscan missionary William of Rubruck likewise found only impoverished pastures in the lower Volga area where Ital once lay.[85] Giovanni da Pian del Carpine, the papal legate to the court of the Mongol Khan Guyuk at that time, mentioned an otherwise unattested Jewish tribe, the Brutakhi, perhaps in the Volga region. Although connections are made to the Khazars, the link is based merely on a common attribution of Judaism.[138]
The 10th century Zoroastrian Dênkart registered the collapse of Khazar power in attributing its eclipse to the enfeebling effects of "false" religion.[note 45] The decline was contemporary to that suffered by the Transoxiana Sāmānid empire to the east, both events paving the way for the rise of the Great Seljuq Empire, whose founding traditions mention Khazar connections.[139][note 46] Whatever successor entity survived, it could no longer function as a bulwark against the pressure east and south of nomad expansions. By 1043, Kimeks and Qipchaqs, thrusting westwards, pressured the Oğuz, who in turn pushed the Pechenegs west towards Byzantium's Balkan provinces.[140]
Khazaria nonetheless left its mark on the rising states and some of their traditions and institutions. Much earlier, Tzitzak, the Khazar wife of Leo III, introduced into the Byzantine court the distinctive kaftan or riding habit of the nomadic Khazars, the tzitzakion (τζιτζάκιον), and this was adopted as a solemn element of imperial dress.[note 47] The orderly hierarchical system of succession by "scales" (lestvichnaia sistema:лествичная система) to the Grand Principate of Kyiv was arguably modelled on Khazar institutions, via the example of the Rus' Khaganate.[141]
The proto-Hungarian Pontic tribe, while perhaps threatening Khazaria as early as 839 (Sarkel), practiced their institutional model, such as the dual rule of a ceremonial kende-kündü and a gyula administering practical and military administration, as tributaries of the Khazars. A dissident group of Khazars, the Qabars, joined the Hungarians in their migration westwards as they moved into Pannonia. Elements within the Hungarian population can be viewed as perpetuating Khazar traditions as a successor state. Byzantine sources refer to Hungary as Western Tourkia in contrast to Khazaria, Eastern Tourkia. The gyula line produced the kings of medieval Hungary through descent from Árpád, while the Qabars retained their traditions longer, and were known as "black Hungarians" (fekete magyarság). Some archaeological evidence from Čelarevo suggests the Qabars practised Judaism[142][143][144] since warrior graves with Jewish symbols were found there, including menorahs, shofars, etrogs, lulavs, candlesnuffers, ash collectors, inscriptions in Hebrew, and a six-pointed star identical to the Star of David.[145][146]
The Khazar state was not the only Jewish state to rise between the fall of the Second Temple (67–70 CE) and the establishment of Israel (1948). A state in Yemen also adopted Judaism in the 4th century, lasting until the rise of Islam.[147]
The Khazar kingdom is said to have stimulated messianic aspirations for a return to Israel as early as Judah Halevi.[148] In the time of the Egyptian vizier Al-Afdal Shahanshah (d. 1121), one Solomon ben Duji, often identified as a Khazarian Jew,[note 49] attempted to advocate for a messianic effort for the liberation of, and return of all Jews to, Palestine. He wrote to many Jewish communities to enlist support. He eventually moved to Kurdistan where his son Menachem some decades later assumed the title of Messiah and, raising an army for this purpose, took the fortress of Amadiya north of Mosul. His project was opposed by the rabbinical authorities and he was poisoned in his sleep. One theory maintains that the Star of David, until then a decorative motif or magical emblem, began to assume its national value in late Jewish tradition from its earlier symbolic use by Menachem.[149]
The word Khazar, as an ethnonym, was last used in the 13th century by people in the North Caucasus believed to practice Judaism.[150] The nature of a hypothetical Khazar diaspora, Jewish or otherwise, is disputed. Avraham ibn Daud mentions encountering rabbinical students descended from Khazars as far away as Toledo, Spain in the 1160s.[151] Khazar communities persisted here and there. Many Khazar mercenaries served in the armies of the Islamic Caliphates and other states. Documents from medieval Constantinople attest to a Khazar community mingled with the Jews of the suburb of Pera.[152] Khazar merchants were active in both Constantinople and Alexandria in the 12th century.[153]
Religion
Tengrism
Direct sources for the Khazar religion are not many, but in all likelihood they originally engaged in a traditional Turkic form of religious practices known as Tengrism, which focused on the sky god Tengri. Something of its nature may be deduced from what we know of the rites and beliefs of contiguous tribes, such as the North Caucasian Huns. Horse sacrifices were made to this supreme deity. Rites involved offerings to fire, water, and the moon, to remarkable creatures, and to "gods of the road" (cf. Old Türk yol tengri, perhaps a god of fortune). Sun amulets were widespread as cultic ornaments. A tree cult was also maintained. Whatever was struck by lightning, man or object, was considered a sacrifice to the high god of heaven. The afterlife, to judge from excavations of aristocratic tumuli, was much a continuation of life on earth, warriors being interred with their weapons, horses, and sometimes with human sacrifices: the funeral of one tudrun in 711-12 saw 300 soldiers killed to accompany him to the otherworld. Ancestor worship was observed. The key religious figure appears to have been a shaman-like qam,[154] and it was these (qozmím) that were, according to the Khazar Hebrew conversion stories, driven out.
Many sources suggest, and a notable number of scholars have argued, that the charismatic Ashina clan played a germinal role in the early Khazar state, although Zuckerman dismisses the widespread notion of their pivotal role as a "phantom". The Ashina were closely associated with the Tengri cult, whose practices involved rites performed to assure a tribe of heaven's protective providence.[155] The qağan was deemed to rule by virtue of qut, "the heavenly mandate/good fortune to rule."[156][note 50]
Christianity
Khazaria long served as a buffer state between the Byzantine empire and both the nomads of the northern steppes and the Umayyad empire, after serving as Byzantium's proxy against the Sasanian Persian empire. The alliance was dropped around 900. Byzantium began to encourage the Alans to attack Khazaria and weaken its hold on Crimea and the Caucasus, while seeking to obtain an entente with the rising Rus' power to the north, which it aspired to convert to Christianity.[15]
On Khazaria's southern flank, both Islam and Byzantine Christianity were proselytising great powers. Byzantine success in the north was sporadic, although Armenian and Albanian missions from Derbend built churches extensively in maritime Daghestan, then a Khazar district.[157] Buddhism also had exercised an attraction on leaders of both the Eastern (552–742) and Western Qağanates (552–659), the latter being the progenitor of the Khazar state.[158] In 682, according to the Armenian chronicle of Movsês Dasxuranc'i, the king of Caucasian Albania, Varaz Trdat, dispatched a bishop, Israyêl, to convert Caucasian "Huns" who were subject to the Khazars, and managed to convince Alp Ilut'uêr, a son-in-law of the Khazar qağan, and his army, to abandon their shamanising cults and join the Christian fold.[159][note 51]
The Arab Georgian martyr St Abo, who converted to Christianity within the Khazar kingdom around 779–80, describes local Khazars as irreligious.[note 52] Some reports register a Christian majority at Samandar,[note 53] or Muslim majorities.[note 54]
Judaism
The conversion of the Khazars to Judaism is mentioned in external sources and it is also mentioned in the Khazar Correspondence, but doubts of its authenticity persist.[160] Hebrew documents, whose authenticity was long doubted and challenged,[note 55] are now widely accepted by specialists as either authentic or as reflecting internal Khazar traditions.[note 56][note 57][note 58][163] Archaeological evidence for conversion, on the other hand, remains elusive,[note 59][note 60] and may reflect either the incompleteness of excavations, or that the stratum of actual adherents was thin.[note 61] Conversion of steppe or peripheral tribes to a universal religion is a fairly well attested phenomenon,[note 62] and the Khazar conversion to Judaism, although unusual, would not have been without precedent.[note 63] The topic is emotionally charged in Israel,[note 64] and a few scholars, such as Moshe Gil (2011) and Shaul Stampfer (2013) argue that the conversion of the Khazar elite to Judaism never happened.[160][167]
Jews from both the Islamic world and Byzantium are known to have migrated to Khazaria during periods of persecution under Heraclius, Justinian II, Leo III, and Romanus Lakapēnos.[168][169] For Simon Schama, Jewish communities from the Balkans and the Bosphoran Crimea, especially from Panticapaeum, began migrating to the more hospitable climate of pagan Khazaria in the wake of these persecutions, and were joined there by Jews from Armenia. The Geniza fragments, he argues, make it clear the Judaising reforms sent roots down into the whole of the population.[170] The pattern is one of an elite conversion preceding large-scale adoption of the new religion by the general population, which often resisted the imposition.[158] One important condition for mass conversion was a settled urban state, where churches, synagogues or mosques provided a focus for religion, as opposed to the free nomadic lifestyle of life on the open steppes.[note 65] A tradition of the Iranian Judeo-Tats claims that their ancestors were responsible for the Khazar conversion.[171] A legend traceable to the 16th-century Italian rabbi Judah Moscato attributed it to Yitzhak ha-Sangari.[172][173][174]
Both the date of the conversion, and the extent of its influence beyond the elite,[note 66] often minimised in some scholarship,[note 67] are a matter of dispute,[note 68] but at some point between 740 and 920 CE, the Khazar royalty and nobility appear to have converted to Judaism, in part, it is argued, perhaps to deflect competing pressures from Arabs and Byzantines to accept either Islam or Orthodoxy.[note 69][note 70]
History of discussions about Khazar Jewishness
The earliest surviving Arabic text that refers to Khazar Jewishness appears to be that which was written by ibn Rustah, a Persian scholar who wrote an encyclopedic work on geography in the early tenth century.[175] It is believed that ibn Rustah derived much of his information from the works of his contemporary Abu al Jayhani based in Central Asia.
Christian of Stavelot in his Expositio in Matthaeum Evangelistam (c. 860–870s) refers to Gazari, presumably Khazars, as living in the lands of Gog and Magog, who were circumcised and omnem Judaismum observat—observing all the laws of Judaism.[note 71] New numismatic evidence of coins dated 837/8 bearing the inscriptions arḍ al-ḫazar (Land of the Khazars), or Mûsâ rasûl Allâh (Moses is the messenger of God, in imitation of the Islamic coin phrase: Muḥammad rasûl Allâh) suggest to many the conversion took place in that decade.[note 72] Olsson argues that the 837/8 evidence marks only the beginning of a long and difficult official Judaization that concluded some decades later.[note 73] A 9th-century Jewish traveller, Eldad ha-Dani, is said to have informed Spanish Jews in 883 that there was a Jewish polity in the East, and that fragments of the legendary Ten Lost Tribes, part of the line of Simeon and half-line of Manasseh, dwelt in "the land of the Khazars", receiving tribute from some 25 to 28 kingdoms.[176][177][178] Another view holds that by the 10th century, while the royal clan officially claimed Judaism, a non-normative variety of Islamisation took place among the majority of Khazars.[179]
By the 10th century, the letter of King Joseph asserts that, after the royal conversion, "Israel returned (yashuvu yisra'el) with the people of Qazaria (to Judaism) in complete repentance (bi-teshuvah shelemah)."[180] Persian historian Ibn al-Faqîh wrote that "all the Khazars are Jews, but they have been Judaized recently". Ibn Fadlân, based on his Caliphal mission (921–922) to the Volga Bulğars, also reported that "the core element of the state, the Khazars, were Judaized",[note 74] something underwritten by the Qaraite scholar Ya'kub Qirqisânî around 937.[note 75] The conversion appears to have occurred against a background of frictions arising from both an intensification of Byzantine missionary activity from the Crimea to the Caucasus, and Arab attempts to wrest control over the latter in the 8th century CE,[181] and a revolt, put down, by the Khavars around the mid-9th century is often invoked as in part influenced by their refusal to accept Judaism.[182] Modern scholars generally[note 76] see the conversion as a slow process through three stages, which accords with Richard Eaton's model of syncretic inclusion, gradual identification and, finally, displacement of the older tradition.[note 77][183]
Sometime between 954 and 961, Ḥasdai ibn Shaprūṭ, from al-Andalus (Muslim Spain), wrote a letter of inquiry addressed to the ruler of Khazaria, and received a reply from Joseph of Khazaria. The exchanges of this Khazar Correspondence, together with the Schechter Letter discovered in the Cairo Geniza and the famous plato nizing dialogue[184] by Judah Halevi, Sefer ha-Kuzari ("Book (of) The Khazari"), which plausibly drew on such sources,[note 78] provide us with the only direct evidence of the indigenous traditions[note 79] concerning the conversion. King Bulan[note 80] is said to have driven out the sorcerers,[note 81] and to have received angelic visitations exhorting him to find the true religion, upon which, accompanied by his vizier, he travelled to desert mountains of Warsān on a seashore, where he came across a cave rising from the plain of Tiyul in which Jews used to celebrate the Sabbath. Here he was circumcised.[note 82] Bulan is then said to have convened a royal debate between exponents of the three Abrahamic religions. He decided to convert when he was convinced of Judaism's superiority. Many scholars situate this c. 740, a date supported by Halevi's own account.[188][189] The details are both Judaic[note 83] and Türkic: a Türkic ethnogonic myth speaks of an ancestral cave in which the Ashina were conceived from the mating of their human ancestor and a wolf ancestress.[190][note 84][191] These accounts suggest that there was a rationalising syncretism of native pagan traditions with Jewish law, by melding through the motif of the cave, a site of ancestral ritual and repository of forgotten sacred texts, Türkic myths of origin and Jewish notions of redemption of Israel's fallen people.[187] It is generally agreed they adopted Rabbinical rather than Qaraite Judaism.[192]
Ibn Fadlan reports that the settlement of disputes in Khazaria was adjudicated by judges hailing each from his community, be it Christian, Jewish, Muslim, or Pagan.[193] Some evidence suggests that the Khazar king saw himself as a defender of Jews even beyond the kingdom's frontiers, retaliating against Muslim or Christian interests in Khazaria in the wake of Islamic and Byzantine persecutions of Jews abroad.[194][note 85] Ibn Fadlan recounts specifically an incident in which the king of Khazaria destroyed the minaret of a mosque in Atil as revenge for the destruction of a synagogue in Dâr al-Bâbûnaj, and allegedly said he would have done worse were it not for a fear that the Muslims might retaliate in turn against Jews.[192][195] Ḥasdai ibn Shaprūṭ sought information on Khazaria in the hope he might discover "a place on this earth where harassed Israel can rule itself" and wrote that, were it to prove true that Khazaria had such a king, he would not hesitate to forsake his high office and his family in order to emigrate there.[note 86]
Albert Harkavy noted in 1877 that an Arabic commentary on Isaiah 48:14 ascribed to Saadia Gaon or to the Karaite scholar Benjamin Nahâwandî, interpreted "The Lord hath loved him" as a reference "to the Khazars, who will go and destroy Babel" (i.e., Babylonia), a name used to designate the country of the Arabs. This has been taken as an indication of hopes by Jews that the Khazars might succeed in destroying the Caliphate.[172]
Islam
In 965, as the Qağanate was struggling against the victorious campaign of the Rus' prince Sviatoslav, the Islamic historian Ibn al-Athîr mentions that Khazaria, attacked by the Oğuz, sought help from Khwarezm, but their appeal was rejected because they were regarded as "infidels" (al-kuffâr:pagans). Save for the king, the Khazarians are said to have converted to Islam in order to secure an alliance, and the Turks were, with Khwarezm's military assistance, repelled. It was this that, according to Ibn al-Athîr, led the Jewish king of Khazar to convert to Islam.[125]
Genetics
Nine skeletons dating to the 7th–9th centuries excavated from elite military burial mounds of the Khazar Khaganate (in the modern Rostov region) were analyzed in two genetic studies (from 2019 and 2021). According to the 2019 study, the results "confirm the Turkic roots of the Khazars, but also highlight their ethnic diversity and some integration of conquered populations". The samples did not show a genetic connection to Ashkenazi Jews, and the results do not support the hypothesis of Ashkenazi Jews being descendants of the Khazars.[196] In the 2021 study the results showed both European and East Asian paternal haplogroups in the samples: three individuals carried R1a Y-haplogroup, two had C2b, and the rest carried haplogroups G2a, N1a, Q, and R1b, respectively. According to the authors, "The Y-chromosome data are consistent with the results of the craniological study and genome-wide analysis of the same individuals in the sense that they show mixed genetic origins for the early medieval Khazar nobility".[197]
Claims of Khazar ancestry
Claims of Khazar origins of peoples, or suggestions that the Khazars were absorbed by them, have been made with regard to the Kazakhs, the Hungarians, the Judaizing Slavic Subbotniks, the Muslim Karachays, the Kumyks, the Avars, the Cossacks of the Don and the Ukrainian Cossacks (see Khazar hypothesis of Cossack ancestry), the Turkic-speaking Krymchaks and their Crimean neighbours the Karaites, the Moldavian Csángós, the Mountain Jews and others.[20][198][21][22] Turkic-speaking Crimean Karaites (known in the Crimean Tatar language as Qaraylar), some of whom migrated in the 19th century from the Crimea to Poland and Lithuania have claimed Khazar origins. Specialists in Khazar history question the connection.[199][200][note 87] Scholarship is likewise sceptical of claims that the Tatar-speaking Krymchak Jews of the Crimea descend from Khazars.[201]
Crimean Karaites and Krymchaks
In 1839, the Karaim scholar Abraham Firkovich was appointed by the Russian government as a researcher into the origins of the Jewish sect known as the Karaites.[202] In 1846, one of his acquaintances, the Russian orientalist Vasilii Vasil'evich Grigor'ev (1816–1881), theorised that the Crimean Karaites were of Khazar stock. Firkovich vehemently rejected the idea,[203] a position seconded by Firkovich, who hoped that by "proving" his people were of Turkic origin, would secure them exception from Russian anti-Jewish laws, since they bore no responsibility for Christ's crucifixion.[204] This idea has a notable impact in Crimean Karaite circles.[note 88] It is now believed that he forged much of this material on Khazars and Karaites.[206] Specialists in Khazar history also question the connection.[200][note 87] Brook's genetic study of European Karaites found no evidence of a Khazar or Turkic origin for any uniparental lineage but did reveal the European Karaites' links to Egyptian Karaites and to Rabbinical Jewish communities.[207][208]
Another Turkic Crimean group, the Krymchaks had retained very simple Jewish traditions, mostly devoid of halakhic content, and very much taken with magical superstitions which, in the wake of the enduring educational efforts of the great Sephardi scholar Chaim Hezekiah Medini, came to conform with traditional Judaism.[209]
Though the assertion they were not of Jewish stock enabled many Crimean Karaites to survive the Holocaust, which led to the murder of 6,000 Krymchaks, after the war, many of the latter, somewhat indifferent to their Jewish heritage, took a cue from the Crimean Karaites, and denied this connection in order to avoid the antisemitic effects of the stigma attached to Jews.[210]
Ashkenazi-Khazar theories
Several scholars have suggested that instead of disappearing after the dissolution of their Empire, the Khazars migrated westward and eventually, they formed part of the core of the later Ashkenazi Jewish population of Europe. This hypothesis is greeted with scepticism or caution by most scholars.[note 89][note 90][note 91]
The German Orientalist Karl Neumann, in the context of an earlier controversy about possible connections between the Khazars and the ancestors of the Slavic peoples, suggested as early as 1847 that emigrant Khazars might have influenced the core population of Eastern European Jews.[note 92]
The theory was then taken up by Albert Harkavi in 1869, when he also claimed that a possible link existed between the Khazars and the Ashkenazim,[note 93] but the theory that Khazar converts formed a major proportion of the Ashkenazim was first proposed to the Western public in a lecture which was delivered by Ernest Renan in 1883.[note 94][211] Occasional suggestions that there was a small Khazar component in East European Jews emerged in works by Joseph Jacobs (1886), Anatole Leroy-Beaulieu, a critic of antisemitism (1893),[212] Maksymilian Ernest Gumplowicz,[note 95] and by the Russian-Jewish anthropologist Samuel Weissenberg.[note 96] In 1909, Hugo von Kutschera developed the notion into a book-length study,[214][215] arguing that the Khazars formed the foundational core of the modern Ashkenazim.[214] Maurice Fishberg introduced the notion to American audiences in 1911.[213][216] The idea was also taken up by the Polish-Jewish economic historian and General Zionist Yitzhak Schipper in 1918.[note 97][217] Israel Bartal has suggested that from the Haskalah onwards, polemical pamphlets against the Khazars were inspired by Sephardi organizations which opposed the Khazaro-Ashkenazim.[218]
Scholarly anthropologists, such as Roland B. Dixon (1923), and writers such as H. G. Wells (1920) used it to argue that "The main part of Jewry never was in Judea",[note 98][219] a thesis that was to have a political echo in later opinion.[note 99][220][221]
In 1932, Samuel Krauss ventured the theory that the biblical Ashkenaz referred to northern Asia Minor, and he identified it as the ancestral homeland of the Khazars, a position which was immediately disputed by Jacob Mann.[222] Ten years later, in 1942, Abraham N. Polak (sometimes referred to as Poliak), later professor for the history of the Middle Ages at Tel Aviv University, published a Hebrew monograph in which he concluded that the East European Jews came from Khazaria.[note 100][note 101][223] D.M. Dunlop, writing in 1954, thought that very little evidence supported what he considered a mere assumption, and he also argued that the Ashkenazi-Khazar descent theory went far beyond what "our imperfect records" permit.[224] In 1955, Léon Poliakov, who assumed that the Jews of Western Europe resulted from a "panmixia" in the first millennium, asserted that it was widely assumed that Europe's Eastern Jews were descended from a mixture of Khazarian and German Jews.[note 102] Poliak's work found some support in Salo Wittmayer Baron and Ben-Zion Dinur,[note 103][note 104] but was dismissed by Bernard Weinryb as a fiction (1962).[note 105] Bernard Lewis was of the opinion that the word in Cairo Geniza interpreted as Khazaria is actually Hakkari and therefore it relates to the Kurds of the Hakkari mountains in southeast Turkey.[228]
The Khazar-Ashkenazi hypothesis came to the attention of a much wider public with the publication of Arthur Koestler's The Thirteenth Tribe in 1976,[229] which was both positively reviewed and dismissed as a fantasy, and a somewhat dangerous one. Israeli historian Zvi Ankori argued that Koestler had allowed his literary imagination to espouse Poliak's thesis, which most historians dismissed as speculative.[135] Israel's ambassador to Britain branded it "an anti-Semitic action financed by the Palestinians", while Bernard Lewis claimed that the idea was not supported by any evidence whatsoever, and it had been abandoned by all serious scholars.[229][note 106] Raphael Patai, however, registered some support for the idea that Khazar remnants had played a role in the growth of Eastern European Jewish communities,[note 107] and several amateur researchers, such as Boris Altschüler (1994),[200] kept the thesis in the public eye. The theory has been occasionally manipulated to deny Jewish nationhood.[229][233] Recently, a variety of approaches, from linguistics (Paul Wexler)[234] to historiography (Shlomo Sand)[235] and population genetics (Eran Elhaik, a geneticist from the University of Sheffield)[236] have emerged to keep the theory alive.[237] In a broad academic perspective, both the idea that the Khazars converted en masse to Judaism and the suggestion they emigrated to form the core population of Ashkenazi Jewry, remain highly polemical issues.[238] One thesis held that the Khazar Jewish population went into a northern diaspora and had a significant impact on the rise of Ashkenazi Jews. Connected to this thesis is the theory, expounded by Paul Wexler, dissenting from the majority of Yiddish linguists, that the grammar of Yiddish contains a Khazar substrate.[239]
Use in antisemitic polemic
According to Michael Barkun, while the Khazar hypothesis generally never played any major role in the development of anti-Semitism,[240] it has exercised a noticeable influence on American antisemites since the restrictions on immigration were imposed in the 1920s.[note 108][note 109] Maurice Fishberg and Roland B. Dixon's works were later exploited in racist and religious polemical literature, particularly in literature which advocated British Israelism, both in Britain and the United States.[213][note 110] Particularly after the publication of Burton J. Hendrick's The Jews in America, (1923)[241] it began to enjoy a vogue among advocates of immigration restriction in the 1920s; racial theorists[242] such as Lothrop Stoddard; antisemitic conspiracy-theorists such as the Ku Klux Klan's Hiram Wesley Evans; and some anti-communist polemicists such as John O. Beaty[note 111] and Wilmot Robertson, whose views influenced David Duke.[243] According to Yehoshafat Harkabi (1968) and others,[note 112] it played a role in Arab anti-Zionist polemics, and took on an antisemitic edge. Bernard Lewis, noting in 1987 that Arab scholars had dropped it, remarked that it only occasionally emerged in Arab political discourse.[note 113] It has also played some role in Soviet antisemitic chauvinism[note 114] and Slavic Eurasian historiography; particularly, in the works of scholars like Lev Gumilev,[245] it came to be exploited by the white supremacist Christian Identity movement[246] and even by terrorist esoteric cults like Aum Shinrikyō.[247] The Kazar hypothesis was further exploited by esoteric fascists such as Miguel Serrano, referring to a lost Palestinabuch by the German Nazi-scholar Herman Wirth, who claimed to have proven that the Jews descended from a prehistoric migrant group parasiting on the Great Civilizations.[248]
Genetic studies
The hypothesis of Khazarian ancestry in Ashkenazi has also been a subject of vehement disagreements in the field of population genetics,[note 115] wherein claims have been made concerning evidence both for and against it. Eran Elhaik argued in 2012 for a significant Khazar component in the paternal line based on the study of Y-DNA of Ashkenazi Jews using Caucasian populations—Georgians, Armenians and Azerbaijani Jews—as proxies.[note 116] The evidence from historians he used has been criticised by Shaul Stampfer[249] and the technical response to such a position from geneticists is mostly dismissive, arguing that, if traces of descent from Khazars exist in the Ashkenazi gene pool, the contribution would be quite minor,[250][251][252][253][note 117] or insignificant.[254][255] One geneticist, Raphael Falk, has argued that "national and ethnic prejudices play a central role in the controversy."[note 118] According to Nadia Abu El-Haj, the issues of origins are generally complicated by the difficulties of writing history via genome studies and the biases of emotional investments in different narratives, depending on whether the emphasis lies on direct descent or on conversion within Jewish history. At the time of her writing, the lack of Khazar DNA samples that might allow verification also presented difficulties.[note 119]
In literature
The Kuzari is an influential work written by the medieval Spanish Jewish philosopher and poet Rabbi Yehuda Halevi (c. 1075–1141). Divided into five essays (ma'amarim), it takes the form of a fictional dialogue between the pagan king of the Khazars and a Jew who was invited to instruct him in the tenets of the Jewish religion. The intent of the work, although based on Ḥasdai ibn Shaprūṭ's correspondence with the Khazar king, was not historical, but rather to defend Judaism as a revealed religion, written in the context, firstly of Karaite challenges to the Spanish rabbinical intelligentsia, and then against temptations to adapt Aristotelianism and Islamic philosophy to the Jewish faith.[258] Originally written in Arabic, it was translated into Hebrew by Judah ibn Tibbon.[184]
Benjamin Disraeli's early novel Alroy (1833) draws on Menachem ben Solomon's story.[259] The question of mass religious conversion and the indeterminability of the truth of stories about identity and conversion are central themes of Milorad Pavić's best-selling mystery story Dictionary of the Khazars.[260]
H.N. Turteltaub's Justinian, Marek Halter's Book of Abraham and Wind of the Khazars, and Michael Chabon's Gentlemen of the Road allude to or feature elements of Khazar history or create fictional Khazar characters.[261]
Cities associated with the Khazars
Cities associated with the Khazars include Atil, Khazaran, Samandar; in the Caucasus, Balanjar, Kazarki, Sambalut, and Samiran; in Crimea and the Taman region, Kerch, Theodosia, Yevpatoria (Güzliev), Samkarsh (also called Tmutarakan, Tamatarkha), and Sudak; and in the Don valley, Sarkel. A number of Khazar settlements have been discovered in the Mayaki-Saltovo region. Some scholars suppose that the Khazar settlement of Sambat on the Dnieper refers to the later Kyiv.[note 120]
See also
Notes
Footnotes
Resource notes
- "Kiev in Khazar is Sambat, the same as the Hungarian word szombat, 'Saturday', which is likely to have been derived from the Khazar Jews living in Kyiv." (Róna-Tas 1999, p. 152)
Citations
Bibliography
- Abu El-Haj, Nadia (2012). The Genealogical Science: The Search for Jewish Origins and the Politics of Epistemology. Chicago, IL: University of Chicago Press. ISBN 978-0-226-20142-9 – via Google Books.
- Abulafia, David (1987) [First published 1952]. "Asia, Africa and the Trade of Medieval Europe". In Postan, Michael Moïssey; Habakkuk, H.J.; Miller, Edward (eds.). The Cambridge Economic History of Europe: Trade and industry in the Middle Ages. Vol. 2. Cambridge University Press. pp. 402–473. ISBN 978-0-521-08709-4 – via Google Books.
- Altschüler, Boris (1994). Geheimbericht aus der Grossen Steppe. Die Wahrheit über das Reich der Russen [Secret report from the Great Steppe. The truth about the empire of the Russians] (in German). Saarbrücken: Altschüler. ISBN 978-3-9803917-0-2 – via Google Books.
- Atzmon G, Hao L, Pe'er I, Velez C, Pearlman A, Palamara PF, Morrow B, Friedman E, Oddoux C, Burns E, Ostrer H (June 2010). "Abraham's children in the genome era: major Jewish diaspora populations comprise distinct genetic clusters with shared Middle Eastern Ancestry". American Journal of Human Genetics. 86 (6): 850–859. doi:10.1016/j.ajhg.2010.04.015. PMC 3032072. PMID 20560205.
- Bailey, H.W. (1949). "A Khotanese text concerning the Turks in Kanṭṣou" (PDF). Asia Major. New Series 1.1: 28–52.
- Bailey, H.W. (1951). "The Staël-Holstein Miscellany" (PDF). Asia Major. New Series 2.1: 1–45.
- Barkun, Michael (1997). Religion and the Racist Right: The Origins of the Christian Identity Movement. University of North Carolina Press. p. 141. ISBN 978-0-8078-4638-4 – via Internet Archive.
- Barkun, Michael (2012). "Anti-Semitism from Outer Space: The Protocols in the UFO Subculture". In Landes, Richard Allen; Katz, Steven T. (eds.). The Paranoid Apocalypse: A Hundred-year Retrospective on the Protocols of the Elders of Zion. New York University Press. pp. 163–171. ISBN 978-0-8147-4945-6 – via Google Books.
- Baron, Salo Wittmayer (1957). A Social and Religious History of the Jews. Vol. 3. Columbia University Press – via Google Books.
- Barthold, Vasili (1993) [First published 1936]. "Khazar". In Houtsma, Martijn Theodoor; Bosworth, C.E.; van Donzel, E.; Heinrichs, W.P. (eds.). First Encyclopedia of Islam, 1913–1936. Vol. 4. Brill. pp. 935–937. ISBN 978-90-04-09790-2 – via Google Books.
- Bauer, Susan Wise (2010). The History of the Medieval World: From the Conversion of Constantine to the First Crusade. New York, NY: W. W. Norton & Company. ISBN 978-0-393-07817-6 – via Google Books.
- Beckwith, Christopher I. (2011) [First published 2009]. Empires of the Silk Road: A History of Central Eurasia from the Bronze Age to the Present. Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. ISBN 978-0-691-15034-5 – via Google Books.
- Behar, D. M.; Metspalu, M.; Baran, Y.; Kopelman, N. M.; Yunusbayev, B.; Gladstein, A.; et al. (2013). "No Evidence of a Khazar origin for the Ashkenazi Jews". Human Biology. 85 (6): 859–900. doi:10.3378/027.085.0604. PMID 25079123. S2CID 2173604.
- Behar, Doron M; Thomas, Mark G; Skorecki, Karl; Hammer, Michael F; et al. (October 2003). "Multiple Origins of Ashkenazi Levites: Y Chromosome Evidence for Both Near Eastern and European Ancestries". American Journal of Human Genetics. 73 (4): 768–779. doi:10.1086/378506. PMC 1180600. PMID 13680527.
- Blady, Ken (2000). Jewish Communities in Exotic Places. Rowman & Littlefield. ISBN 978-0-765-76112-5 – via Google Books.
- Boller, Paul F. (1992). Memoirs of an Obscure Professor: And Other Essays. TCU Press. ISBN 978-0-87565-097-5 – via Google Books.
- Bowersock, G.W. (2013). The Throne of Adulis: Red Sea Wars on the Eve of Islam. Oxford University Press. ISBN 978-0-199-33384-4 – via Google Books.
- Bowman, Stephen B.; Ankori, Zvi (2001). The Jews of Byzantium 1204–1453. Bloch Publishing Company. ISBN 978-0-8197-0703-1 – via Google Books.
- Brook, Kevin Alan (2006). The Jews of Khazaria. Lanham, Maryland: Rowman & Littlefield. p. 192. ISBN 978-144220302-0.
- Brook, Kevin Alan (2010) [First published 1999]. The Jews of Khazaria (2nd ed.). Rowman & Littlefield. ISBN 978-0-7425-4982-1 – via Google Books.
- Brook, Kevin Alan (Summer 2014). "The Genetics of Crimean Karaites" (PDF). Karadeniz Arastirmalari. 11 (42): 69–84. doi:10.12787/KARAM859. Archived from the original (PDF) on 2 June 2019. Retrieved 12 July 2020.
- Brook, Kevin Alan (2018). The Jews of Khazaria (3rd ed.). Rowman & Littlefield. ISBN 978-1-5381-0342-5.
- Brook, Kevin Alan (2022). The Maternal Genetic Lineages of Ashkenazic Jews. Academic Studies Press. ISBN 978-1-64469-984-3.
- Browning, Robert (1992) [First published 1980]. The Byzantine Empire (2nd ed.). Catholic University of America Press. p. 53. ISBN 978-0-8132-0754-4 – via Internet Archive.
- Burrage Dixon, Roland (1923). The Racial History of Man. C. Scribners sons.
- Cahen, Claude (2011) [First published 1997]. L'Islam, des origines au début de l'Empire ottoman [Islam, from its origins to the beginning of the Ottoman Empire] (in French) (2nd ed.). Hachette. ISBN 978-2-8185-0155-9 – via Google Books.
- Cameron, Averil (1996). "Byzantines and Jews: some recent work on early Byzantium". Byzantine and Modern Greek Studies. 20: 249–274. doi:10.1179/byz.1996.20.1.249. S2CID 162277927.
- Cameron, Averil; Herrin, Judith (1984). Constantinople in the Early Eighth Century: The Parastaseis Syntomoi Chronikai: Introduction, Translation, and Commentary. Columbia Studies in the Classical Tradition. Vol. 10. Brill Archive. ISBN 978-90-04-07010-3 – via Google Books.
- Cohen, Mark R. (2005). The Voice of the Poor in the Middle Ages: An Anthology of Documents from the Cairo Geniza. Jews, Christians, and Muslims from the Ancient to the Modern World Series. Princeton University Press. ISBN 978-0-691-09271-3.
- Cokal, Susann (28 October 2007). "Jews With Swords". The New York Times. Retrieved 5 August 2013.
- Costa, M. D.; Pereira, Joana B.; Richards, Martin B. (8 October 2013). "A substantial prehistoric European ancestry amongst Ashkenazi maternal lineages". Nature Communications. 4: 2543. Bibcode:2013NatCo...4.2543C. doi:10.1038/ncomms3543. PMC 3806353. PMID 24104924.
- Cross, Samuel Hazzard; Sherbowitz-Wetzor, Olgerd P., eds. (1953). The Russian Primary Chronicle (Laurentian text) (PDF). Translated by Cross, Samuel Hazzard; Sherbowitz-Wetzor, Olgerd P. Cambridge, MA: The Mediaeval Academy of America. Archived from the original (PDF) on 16 October 2013.
- Davies, Alan (1992). "The Keegstra Affair". In Davies, Alan (ed.). Antisemitism in Canada: History and Interpretation. Wilfrid Laurier University Press. pp. 227–248. ISBN 978-0-889-20216-0 – via Google Books.
- DeWeese, Devin A. (1994). Islamization and Native Religion in the Golden Horde: Baba Tükles and Conversion to Islam in Historical and Epic Tradition. Hermeneutics, Studies in the History of Religions. Penn State Press. ISBN 978-0-271-04445-3 – via Google Books.
- Dinur, Ben-Zion (1961). Yisrael ba-gola. Vol. 1 (3rd ed.). Bialik Institute.
- Dobrovits, M. (2004). "The Thirty Tribes of the Turks". Acta Orientalia Academiae Scientiarum Hungaricae. 57 (3): 259. doi:10.1556/aorient.57.2004.3.1.
- Dubnov, Simon (1980). History of the Jews: From the Roman Empire to the Early Medieval Period. Vol. 2. Associated University Presses. ISBN 978-0-8453-6659-2 – via Google Books.
- Dunlop, Douglas Morton (1954). History of the Jewish Khazars. New York, NY: Schocken Books – via Google Books.
- "Early History". A Country Study: Hungary. Library of Congress Country Studies. Federal Research Division, Library of Congress. September 1989. Archived from the original on 29 October 2004.
- Elhaik, Eran (December 2012). "The Missing Link of Jewish European Ancestry: Contrasting the Rhineland and the Khazarian Hypotheses". Genome Biology and Human Evolution. 5 (1): 61–74. arXiv:1208.1092. Bibcode:2012arXiv1208.1092E. doi:10.1093/gbe/evs119. PMC 3595026. PMID 23241444.
- Erdal, Marcel (2007). "The Khazar Language". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbuch der Orientalistik: Handbook of Uralic studies. Vol. 17. BRILL. pp. 75–108. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- Falk, Raphael (2017). Zionism and the Biology of Jews. Springer. ISBN 978-3-319-57345-8 – via Google Books.
- Feldman, Alex M. (2022). "The Decline and Fall of Khazaria – Might or Money?". Vostok (Oriens) (4): 75–84. doi:10.31857/S086919080021412-0. S2CID 253192191.
- Feldman, Louis H. (1996). Jew and Gentile in the Ancient World: Attitudes and Interactions from Alexander to Justinian. Princeton University Press. ISBN 978-1-4008-2080-1 – via Google Books.
- Fishberg, Maurice (1911). The Jews: A Study of Race and Environment. Scribner's – via Google Books.
- Geanakoplos, Deno John (1984). Byzantium: Church, Society, and Civilization Seen through Contemporary Eyes (2nd ed.). University of Chicago Press. ISBN 978-0-226-28461-3 – via Google Books.
- Gil, Moshe (July–December 2011). "Did the Khazars Convert to Judaism?". Revue des Études Juives. 170 (3–4): 429–441. doi:10.2143/REJ.170.3.2141801.
- Golb, Norman; Pritsak, Omeljan (1982). Khazarian Hebrew Documents of the Tenth Century. Cornell University Press. ISBN 978-080141221-9 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter B. (July 2018). "The Ethnogonic Tales of the Türks". The Medieval History Journal. 21 (2): 294. doi:10.1177/0971945818775373. S2CID 166026934.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (1980). Khazar Studies: An Historio-Philological Inquiry into the Origins of the Khazars. Vol. 1, 2. Budapest: Akademia Kiado. ISBN 978-0-226-28461-3 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (1992). An Introduction to the History of the Turkic Peoples: Ethnogenesis And State Formation in the Medieval and Early Modern Eurasia and the Middle East. Turcologica. Vol. 9. Wiesbaden: O. Harrassowitz. ISBN 978-3-447-03274-2 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (1994a) [First published 1990]. "The peoples of the South Russian steppes". In Sinor, Denis (ed.). The Cambridge History of Early Inner Asia. Vol. 1. Cambridge University Press. pp. 256–283. ISBN 978-0-521-24304-9 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (1994b) [First published 1990]. "The peoples of the Russian forest belt". In Sinor, Denis (ed.). The Cambridge History of Early Inner Asia. Vol. 1. Cambridge University Press. pp. 230–255. ISBN 978-0-521-24304-9 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2001a). "Nomads in the Sedentary World: The Case of Pre-Chinggisid Rus' and Georgia". In Khazanov, Anatoly M.; Wink, Andre (eds.). Nomads in the Sedentary World. Curzon-IIAS Asian studies series. Routledge. pp. 24–74. ISBN 978-0-7007-1369-1 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2001b). "Nomad and Sedentary societies in Eurasia". In Adas, Michael (ed.). Agricultural and Pastoral Societies in Ancient and Classical History. Critical Perspectives on the Past Series. American Historical Association. Vol. 2. Temple University Press. pp. 71–115. ISBN 978-1-56639-832-9 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2003). Nomads and their neighbours in the Russian steppe: Turks, Khazars and Qipchaqs. Ashgate. ISBN 978-0-86078-885-0 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2006). "The Khazar Sacral Kingship". In Reyerson, Kathryn Von; Stavrou, Theofanis George; Tracy, James Donald (eds.). Pre-modern Russia and its world: Essays in Honour of Thomas S. Noonan. Otto Harrassowitz Verlag. pp. 79–102. ISBN 978-3-447-05425-6 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2007a). "Khazar Studies: Achievements and Perspectives". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbook of Oriental Studies. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 7–57. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2007b). "The Conversion of the Khazars to Judaism". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbook of Oriental Studies. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 123–161. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2007c). "Irano-Turcica: The Khazar Sacral Kingship Revisited". Acta Orientalia Academiae Scientiarum Hung. 60 (2): 161–194. doi:10.1556/AOrient.60.2007.2.2 – via ResearchGate.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2010). Turks and Khazars: Origins, Institutions, and Interactions in Pre-Mongol Eurasia. Variorum Collected Studies Series. Vol. 952. Ashgate Publishing. ISBN 978-1-4094-0003-5 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2011a). Central Asia in World History. New Oxford World History. Oxford University Press. ISBN 978-0-19-979317-4 – via Google Books.
- Golden, Peter Benjamin (2011b). Studies on the Peoples and Cultures of the Eurasian Steppes. Editura Academiei Române. ISBN 978-973-27-2152-0 – via ResearchGate.
- Goldstein, Eric L. (2006). The Price of Whiteness: Jews, Race, and American Identity. Princeton University Press. ISBN 978-069112105-5 – via Google Books.
- Goldstein, Miriam (2011). Karaite Exegesis in Medieval Jerusalem. Mohr Siebeck. p. 9. ISBN 978-316150972-8 – via Google Books.
- Goodman, David G.; Miyazawa, Masanori (2000) [First published 1995]. Jews in the Japanese Mind: The History and Uses of a Cultural Stereotype. Lexington Books. ISBN 978-0-7391-0167-4 – via Google Books.
- Goodrick-Clarke, Nicholas (2003) [First published 2001]. Black Sun: Aryan cults, esoteric nazism, and the politics of identity. NYU Press. ISBN 978-0-8147-3155-0 – via Google Books.
- Gow, Andrew Colin (1995). The " Red Jews": Antisemitism in the Apocalyptic Age 1200–1600. Brill Publishers. ISBN 978-90-04-10255-2 – via Google Books.
- Halevi, Judah (1998). Korobkin, Nissam Daniel (ed.). The Kuzari: In Defense of the Despised Faith. Northvale, New Jersey-Jerusalem: Jason Aronson. ISBN 978-076579970-8 – via Google Books.
- Halevy, Yehuda (1998). Korobkin, N. Daniel (ed.). The Kuzari. In defense of the Despised Faith. Jason Aronson. ISBN 978-0-7657-9970-8 – via Google Books.
- Harkabi, Yehoshafat (1987) [First published 1968]. "Contemporary Arab Anti-Semitism: its Causes and Roots". In Fein, Helen (ed.). The Persisting Question: Sociological Perspectives and Social Contexts of Modern Antisemitism. Walter de Gruyter. pp. 412–427. ISBN 978-3-11-010170-6 – via Google Books.
- Heath, Ian (1979). Byzantine Armies 886-1118. Osprey Publishing. ISBN 978-0-85045306-5.
- Herlihy, David (1984). "Demography". In Strayer, Joseph R. (ed.). Dictionary of the Middle Ages. Vol. 4. Charles Scribner's Sons. pp. 136–148. ISBN 978-0-684-17024-4.
- Howorth, H. H. (1870). "On the Westerly Drifting of Nomades, from the Fifth to the Nineteenth Century. Part IV. The Circassians and White Khazars". The Journal of the Ethnological Society of London. 2 (2): 182–192. doi:10.2307/3014425. JSTOR 3014425.
- Inaba, Minoru; Balogh, Dániel (2020). "The legend of Xinnie in the seventh and eighth centuries". In Balogh, Dániel (ed.). Hunnic Peoples in Central and South Asia: Sources for their Origin and History. Barkhuis. pp. 103–107. ISBN 978-9-493-19401-4 – via Google Books.
- Kaegi, Walter Emil (2003). Heraclius, Emperor of Byzantium (2nd ed.). Cambridge University Press. ISBN 978-0-521-81459-1 – via Google Books.
- "Khazar". Encyclopedia Britannica. 29 March 2020.
- Kim, Hyun Jin (2016). The Huns. Routledge. ISBN 978-1-317-34090-4 – via Google Books.
- Kizilov, Mikhail (2009). The Karaites of Galicia: An Ethnoreligious Minority Among the Ashkenazim, the Turks, and the Slavs, 1772–1945. Brill. ISBN 978-90-04-16602-8 – via Google Books.
- Kizilov, Mikhail (2014). "National Inventions: The Imperial Emancipation of the Karaites from Jewishness". In Cvetkovski, Roland; Hofmeister, Alexis (eds.). An Empire of Others: Creating Ethnographic Knowledge in Imperial Russia and the USSR. Central European University Press. pp. 369–393. ISBN 978-6-155-22576-5 – via Google Books.
- Koestler, Arthur (1977) [First published 1976]. The Thirteenth Tribe: The Khazar Empire and Its Heritage. London: Pan Books. ISBN 978-0-09-125550-3 – via Google Books.[permanent dead link]
- Kohen, Elli (2007). History of the Byzantine Jews: A Microcosmos in the Thousand Year Empire. University Press of America. ISBN 978-0-7618-3623-0 – via Google Books.
- Kolditz, Sebastian (2017). "Barbarian Emperors? Aspects of the Byzantine Perception of the qaghan (chaganos) in the Earlier Middle Ages". In Scholl, Christian; Gebhardt, Torben R.; Clauß, Jan (eds.). Transcultural Approaches to the Concept of Imperial Rule in the Middle Ages. Peter Lang. pp. 41–76. ISBN 978-3-631-70624-4.
- Kordosis, Stefanos (2017). "The Tibetan Title Dru gu Gesar (Turk Caesar / Caesar of the Turks) in the Northern Branch of the Silk Route and the Role of the Khazars". ΘΗΣΑΥΡΙΣΜΑΤΑ (47): 183–192.
- Kornienko, I. V.; Faleeva, T. G.; Schurr, T. G.; Aramova, O. Yu; Ochir-Goryaeva, M. A.; Batieva, E. F.; Vdovchenkov, E. V.; Moshkov, N. E.; Kukanova, V. V.; Ivanov, I. N.; Sidorenko, Yu S. (1 April 2021). "Y-Chromosome Haplogroup Diversity in Khazar Burials from Southern Russia". Russian Journal of Genetics. 57 (4): 477–488. doi:10.1134/S1022795421040049. ISSN 1608-3369. S2CID 233479468 – via ResearchGate.
- Kovalev, R.K. (2005). "Creating Khazar Identity through Coins: the Special Issue Dirhams of 837/838". In Curta, Florin (ed.). East Central and Eastern Europe in the Early Middle Ages. Ann Arbor. pp. 220–251. ISBN 978-047211498-6.
- von Kutschera, Hugo (1909). Die Chasaren; historische Studie [Those Khazars; historical Study] (in German). A. Holzhauen. ISBN 978-027447307-6 – via Google Books.
- Lee, Joo-Yup (2016). "The Historical Meaning of the Term Turk and the Nature of the Turkic Identity of the Chinggisid and Timurid Elites in Post-Mongol Central Asia". Central Asiatic Journal. 59 (1–2): 101–132. doi:10.13173/centasiaj.59.1-2.0101.
- Leviant, Curt (2008) [First published 1969]. Masterpieces of Hebrew Literature: Selections from 2000 Years of Jewish Creativity. Jewish Publication Society. ISBN 978-0-8276-0954-9 – via Google Books.
- Lewis, Bernard (1987) [First published 1986]. Semites and Anti-Semites: An Inquiry Into Conflict and Prejudice. New York: W. W. Norton & Company. ISBN 978-0-393-30420-6 – via Internet Archive.
- Lewis, Bernard (2013). The Jews of Islam. Routledge. ISBN 978-1-135-03021-6 – via Google Books.
- Litman, Jacob (1984). The Economic Role of Jews in Medieval Poland: The Contribution of Yitzhak Schipper. University Press of America. ISBN 978-081914244-3 – via Google Books.
- Lobel, Diana (2000). Between Mysticism and Philosophy: Sufi Language of Religious Experience in Experience in Judah Ha-Levi's Kuzari. SUNY Press. ISBN 978-079144451-1 – via Google Books.
- Logan, F. Donald (1992) [First published 1983]. The Vikings in History (2nd ed.). Routledge. ISBN 978-0-415-08396-6 – via Google Books.
- Luttwak, Edward N. (2009). The Grand Strategy of the Byzantine Empire. Harvard University Press. ISBN 978-0-674-03519-5 – via Google Books.
- "Magyars". WebChron: The Web Chronology Project. Retrieved 22 August 2013.
- Makkai, László (1994). "The Hungarians' Prehistory, Their Conquest of Hungary and their raids to the West". In Sugar, Peter F.; Hanák, Péter; Frank, Tibor (eds.). A History of Hungary. Indiana University Press. p. 11. ISBN 0-253-35578-8 – via Google Books.
- Mako, Gerald (2010). "The Possible Reasons for the Arab-Khazar Wars". Archivum Eurasiae Medii Aevi. 17: 45–57.
- Malkiel, David (2008). Reconstructing Ashkenaz: The Human Face of Franco-German Jewry, 1000–1250. Stanford University Press. ISBN 978-0-8047-8684-3 – via Google Books.
- Mango, Cyril, ed. (2002). The Oxford History of Byzantium. Oxford University Press. ISBN 978-0-19-814098-6.
- Mariner, Rodney (1999). "Conversion to Judaism: a tale of the good, the bad and the ungrateful". In Lamb, Christopher; Bryant, M. Darroll (eds.). Religious Conversion: Contemporary Practices and Controversies. A&C Black. pp. 89–101. ISBN 978-0-826-43713-6 – via Google Books.
- Maroney, Eric (2010). The Other Zions: The Lost Histories of Jewish Nations. Rowman & Littlefield. p. 55. ISBN 978-1-4422-0045-6 – via Internet Archive.
- Melamed, Avraham (2003). Goodman, Lenn Evan (ed.). The Philosopher-King in Medieval and Renaissance Jewish Political Thought. SUNY Press. ISBN 978-0-7914-8770-9 – via Google Books.
- Meserve, Margaret (2009). Empires of Islam in Renaissance Historical Thought. Harvard Historical Series. Vol. 158. Harvard University Press. ISBN 978-0-674-02656-8 – via Google Books.
- Mikheyev, Alexander S.; Qiu, Lijun; Zarubin, Alexei; Moshkov, Nikita; Orlov, Yuri; Chartier, Duane R.; Kornienko, Igor V.; Faleeva, Tatyana G.; Klyuchnikov, Vladimir; Batieva, Elena F.; Tatarinova, Tatiana V. (16 December 2019). "Diverse genetic origins of medieval steppe nomad conquerors". bioRxiv 10.1101/2019.12.15.876912.
- Miller, Philip E. (1993). Karaite Separatism in Nineteenth-Century Russia: Joseph Solomon Lutski's Epistle of Israel's Deliverance. Cincinnati: Hebrew Union College Press. ISBN 978-0-878-20137-2 – via Google Books.
- Morris, Benny (2003) [First published 2002]. The Road to Jerusalem: Glubb Pasha, Palestine and the Jews. I. B. Tauris. ISBN 978-1-86064-989-9 – via Google Books.
- Moss, Walter (2002) [First published 1997]. A History of Russia: To 1917. Anthem Russian and Slavonic studies. Vol. 1. Anthem Press. ISBN 978-0-85728-752-6 – via Google Books.
- Nebel, Almut; Filon, Dvora; Brinkmann, B (2001). "The Y chromosome pool of Jews as part of the genetic landscape of the Middle East". American Journal of Human Genetics. 69 (5): 1095–1112. doi:10.1086/324070. PMC 1274378. PMID 11573163.
- Nebel, Almut; Filon, Dvora; Faerman, Marina (March 2005). "Y chromosome evidence for a founder effect in Ashkenazi Jews". European Journal of Human Genetics. 13 (3): 388–391. doi:10.1038/sj.ejhg.5201319. PMID 15523495. S2CID 1466556.
- Noonan, Thomas S. (1999). "European Russia c500-c1050". In Reuter, Timothy; McKitterick, Rosamond (eds.). The New Cambridge Medieval History: Volume 3, C.900-c.1024. Vol. 3. Cambridge University Press. pp. 485–534. ISBN 978-0-521-36447-8 – via Google Books.
- Noonan, Thomas S. (2001). "The Khazar Qaghanate and its impact on the early Rus' state: the Translatio Imperii from Itil to Kiev". In Khazanov, Anatoly M.; Wink, André (eds.). Nomads in the Sedentary World. Curzon-IIAS Asian studies series. Routledge. pp. 76–102. ISBN 978-0-7007-1369-1 – via Google Books.
- Noonan, Thomas S. (2007). "The Economy of the Khazar Khaganate". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbuch der Orientalistik: Handbook of Uralic studies. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 207–244. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- Olsson, Joshua T. (2013). "Coup d'état, Coronation and Conversion: Some Reflections on the Adoption of Judaism by the Khazar Khaganate". Journal of the Royal Asiatic Society. 23 (4): 495–526. doi:10.1017/S1356186313000266. S2CID 161833156.
- Oppenheim, Samuel A (1994). "Jews". In Olson, James Stuart; Pappas, Lee Brigance; Pappas, Charles (eds.). An Ethnohistorical Dictionary of the Russian and Soviet Empires. Greenwood Publishing Group. pp. 305–328. ISBN 978-0-313-27497-8 – via Google Books.
- Ostrer, Harry (2012). Legacy: A Genetic History of the Jewish People. Oxford University Press. ISBN 978-0-19-997638-6 – via Google Books.
- Ostrogorski, George (1969). History of the Byzantine State. Rutgers University Press. ISBN 978-0-8135-0599-2 – via Internet Archive.
- Patai, Raphael; Patai, Jennifer (1989) [First published 1975]. The Myth of the Jewish Race. Wayne State University Press. ISBN 978-0-8143-1948-2 – via Google Books.
- Peacock, Andrew C.S. (2010). Early Seljūq History: A New Interpretation. Routledge. ISBN 978-0-415-54853-3 – via Google Books.
- Petrukhin, Vladimir (2007). "Khazaria and Rus': An Examination of their Historical Relations". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbuch der Orientalistik: Handbook of Uralic studies. Vol. 17. BRILL. pp. 245–268. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- Petrukhin, Vladimir; Flyorov, Valeriy (2010). "Iudaizm v Khazarii po dannym arkheologii" Иудаизм в Хазарии по данным археологии [Judaism in Khazaria according to Archaeological Data]. In Bartal, Israel; Kulik, Alexander (eds.). Istoriya yevreyskogo naroda v Rossii. Ot drevnosti do rannego Novogo vremeni История еврейского народа в России. От древности до раннего Нового времени [History of Jewish People in Russia. From Antiquity to the Early Modern Period] (in Russian). Vol. 1. Moscow; Jerusalem: Bridges of Culture; Gerashim. pp. 149–161. ISBN 978-545751756-1.
- Piltz, Elisabeth (2004) [First published 1997]. "Middle Byzantine Court Costume". In Maguire, Henry (ed.). Byzantine Court Culture from 829 To 1204. Dumbarton Oaks. pp. 39–52. ISBN 978-0-88402-308-1 – via Google Books.
- Poliakov, Léon (2005) [1955/1975]. The History of Anti-semitism: From the time of Christ to the court Jews. University of Pennsylvania Press. ISBN 978-0-8122-1863-3 – via Google Books.
- Polonsky, Antony; Basista, Jakub; Link-Lenczowski, Andrzej, eds. (1993). The Jews in Old Poland: 1000–1795. I. B. Tauris. ISBN 978-1-85043-342-2 – via Google Books.
- Pritsak, Omeljan (September 1978). "The Khazar Kingdom's Conversion to Judaism" (PDF). Harvard Ukrainian Studies. II (3): 261–281.
- Rezakhani, Khodadad (2017). ReOrienting the Sasanians: East Iran in Late Antiquity. Edinburgh University Press. ISBN 978-1-474-40031-2 – via Google Books.
- Róna-Tas, András (1999). Hungarians & Europe in the Early Middle Ages: An Introduction to Early Hungarian History. Central European University Press. ISBN 978-963-9116-48-1 – via Google Books.
- Rossman, Vadim Joseph (2002). Russian Intellectual Antisemitism in the Post-Communist Era. University of Nebraska Press. ISBN 978-0-8032-3948-7 – via Google Books.
- Rossman, Vadim Joseph (2007). "Anti-Semitism in Eurasian Historiography: The Caser of Lev Gumilev". In Shlapentokh, Dmitry (ed.). Russia Between East and West: Scholarly Debates on Eurasianism. International Studies in Sociology and Social Anthropology. Vol. 102. BRILL. pp. 121–188. ISBN 978-90-04-15415-5 – via Google Books.
- Rubin, Rita (7 May 2013). "'Jews a Race' Genetic Theory Comes Under Fierce Attack by DNA Expert". The Forward. Retrieved 9 June 2014.
- Russell, Josiah C. (1972). "The Population in Europe". In Cipolla, Carlo M. (ed.). The Fontana Economic History of Europe: The Middle Ages. Vol. 1. Collins/Fontana. pp. 25–71.
- Sand, Shlomo (2010) [First published 2009]. The Invention of the Jewish People. London: Verso Books. ISBN 978-1-84467-623-1 – via Internet Archive.
- Schama, Simon (2013). The Story of the Jews: Finding the Words (1000 BCE – 1492). Random House. ISBN 978-1-409-04004-0 – via Google Books.
- Schwartzwald, Jack L. (2015). The Collapse and Recovery of Europe, AD 476-1648. McFarland. ISBN 978-1-476-66230-5 – via Google Books.
- Schweid, Eliezer (2007). "The Khazar motif in Judah Halevi's Sefer ha-Kuzari". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbuch der Orientalistik: Handbook of Uralic studies. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 279–290. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- Serrano, Miguel (2011) [First published 1984]. Adolf Hitler, the Ultimate Avatar. pp. 79, 295 – via Internet Archive.
- Shapira, Dan D. Y. (2009). "Jews in Khazaria". In Ehrlich, Mark Avrum (ed.). Encyclopedia of the Jewish Diaspora: Origins, Experiences, and Culture. Vol. 3: (Countries, Regions, and Communities). ABC-CLIO. pp. 1097–1104. ISBN 978-1-85109-873-6 – via Google Books.
- Shapira, Dan D.Y. (2006). "Remarks on Avraham Firkovicz and the Hebrew Mejelis "Document"". Acta Orientalia Academiae Scientiarum Hungaricae. 59 (2): 131–180. doi:10.1556/AOrient.59.2006.2.1.
- Shapira, Dan D.Y. (2007a). "Iranian Sources on the Khazars". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 291–305. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2. Retrieved 13 February 2013 – via Google Books.
- Shapira, Dan D.Y. (2007b). "Armenian and Georgian Sources on the Khazars – A Re-Evaluation". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbook of Oriental Studies. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 307–351. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2. Retrieved 13 February 2013 – via Google Books.
- Shepard, Jonathan (2006). "Closer Encounters with the Byzantine World: The Rus at the Straits of Kerch". In Reyerson, Kathryn Von; Stavrou, Theofanis George; Tracy, James Donald (eds.). Pre-modern Russia and its world: Essays in Honour of Thomas S. Noonan. Otto Harrassowitz Verlag. pp. 15–77. ISBN 978-3-447-05425-6 – via Google Books.
- Shingiray, Irina Lita (2012). "Ethos, Materiality and Paradigms of Political Action in Early Medieval Communities of the Northwestern Caspian Region". In Hartley, Charles W.; Yazicioğlu, G. Bike; Smith, Adam T. (eds.). The Archaeology of Power and Politics in Eurasia: Regimes and Revolutions. Cambridge University Press. pp. 188–216. ISBN 978-1-107-01652-1 – via Google Books.
- Shirota, Shun (城田俊) (2005). Woods, John E.; Pfeiffer, Judith; Tucker, Ernest (eds.). "The Chinese Chroniclers of the Khazars: Notes on Khazaria in Tang Period Texts". Archivum Eurasiae Medii Aevi. 14: 231–261.
- Shnirelman, Victor A (2007). "The Story of an Euphemism: The Khazars in Russian Nationalist Literature". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbuch der Orientalistik: Handbook of Uralic studies. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 353–372. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- Singerman, Robert (2004). "Contemporary Racist and Judeophobic Ideology Discovers the Khazars, or, Who Really Are the Jews?" (PDF). Rosaline and Myer Feinstein Lecture Series. Archived from the original (PDF) on 5 March 2014. Retrieved 1 March 2014.
- Sneath, David (2007). The Headless State: Aristocratic Orders, Kinship Society, and Misrepresentations of Nomadic Inner Asia. Columbia University Press. ISBN 978-0-231-51167-4 – via Google Books.
- Somogyi, Péter (2008). "New remarks on the flow of Byzantine coins in Avaria and Walachia during the second half of the seventh century". In Curta, Florin; Kovalev, Roman (eds.). The "Other" Europe in the Middle Ages: Avars, Bulgars, Khazars and Cumans. East Central and Eastern Europe in the Middle Ages, 450–1450. Vol. 2. Brill. pp. 83–149. ISBN 978-90-04-16389-8 – via Google Books.
- Spinei, Victor (2009). The Romanians and the Turkic Nomads North of the Danube Delta from the Tenth to the Mid-Thirteenth Century. BRILL. ISBN 978-9-004-17536-5 – via Google Books.
- Spolsky, Bernard (2014). The Languages of the Jews: A Sociolinguistic History. Cambridge University Press. ISBN 978-1-107-05544-5 – via Google Books.
- Stampfer, Shaul (2013). "Did the Khazars Convert to Judaism?" (PDF). Jewish Social Studies. 19 (3): 1–72. doi:10.2979/jewisocistud.19.3.1. S2CID 161320785.
- Stampfer, Shaul (2014). "Are We All Khazars Now?". Jewish Review of Books. pp. 1–72.
- Szádeczky-Kardoss, Samuel (1994) [First published 1990]. "The Avars". In Sinor, Denis (ed.). The Cambridge History of Early Inner Asia. Handbook of Oriental Studies. Vol. 1. Cambridge University Press. pp. 206–228. ISBN 978-0-521-24304-9. Retrieved 13 February 2013 – via Google Books.
- Szpiech, Ryan (2012). Conversion and Narrative: Reading and Religious Authority in Medieval Polemic. University of Pennsylvania Press. ISBN 978-0-8122-0761-3 – via Google Books.
- Szyszman, Simon [in French] (1980). Le karaïsme: ses doctrines et son histoire [Karaism: its doctrines and its history] (in French). Éditions L'Âge d'Homme. ISBN 978-282513088-9 – via Google Books.
- Taagepera, Rein (September 1997). "Expansion and Contraction Patterns of Large Polities: Context for Russia". International Studies Quarterly. 41 (3): 496. doi:10.1111/0020-8833.00053. JSTOR 2600793.
- Toch, Michael (2012). The Economic History of European Jews: Late Antiquity and Early Middle Ages. Études sur le Judaïsme Médiéval. Vol. 56. Leiden: Brill Publishers. ISBN 978-90-04-23534-2 – via Google Books.
- Toynbee, Arnold (1962) [1934–1961]. A Study of History. Vol. 1–12. Oxford University Press.
- Turchin, Peter; Adams, Jonathan M.; Hall, Thomas D (December 2006). "East-West Orientation of Historical Empires". Journal of World-Systems Research. 12 (2): 222. ISSN 1076-156X.
- Vogt, Judith (1975). "Left‐wing 'anti‐Zionism' in Norway". Patterns of Prejudice. 9 (6): 15–q8. doi:10.1080/0031322X.1975.9969275.
- Wachtel, Andrew (1998). Making a Nation, Breaking a Nation: Literature and Cultural Politics in Yugoslavia. Stanford University Press. pp. 210–215. ISBN 978-0-8047-3181-2 – via Google Books.
- Wang, Pu; et al. Tang Huiyao (in Chinese). Vol. 98.
- Wang, Pu; et al. Tang Huiyao (in Chinese). Vol. 72.
- Wasserstein, David (2007). "The Khazars and the World of Islam". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbuch der Orientalistik: Handbook of Uralic studies. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 373–386. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- Wei, Zheng; et al. "vol. 84". Book of Sui (in Chinese).
- Weinryb, Bernard Dov (1973a). The Jews of Poland: A Social and Economic History of the Jewish Community in Poland from 1100 to 1800. Jewish Publication Society. pp. 21–22. ISBN 978-082760016-4 – via Google Books.
- Weinryb, Bernard Dov (1973b). The Jews of Poland: A Social and Economic History of the Jewish Community in Poland from 1100 to 1800 he non-Jewish origins of the Sephardic Jews. Jewish Publication Society. ISBN 978-0-8276-0016-4 – via Google Books.
- Wells, H. G. (1920). The Outline of History: Being a Plain History of Life and Mankind. Vol. 1. Macmillan.
- Wexler, Paul (1987). Explorations in Judeo-Slavic Linguistics. Contributions to the sociology of Jewish languages. Vol. 2. Brill Archive. ISBN 978-90-04-07656-3 – via Google Books.
- Wexler, Paul (1996). The non-Jewish origins of the Sephardic Jews. SUNY. ISBN 978-1-4384-2393-7 – via Google Books.
- Wexler, Paul (2002). Two-Tiered Relexification in Yiddish: Jews, Sorbs, Khazars and the Kiev-Polessian Dialect. Trends in linguistics / Studies and monographs: Studies and monographs. Vol. 136. Walter de Gruyter. ISBN 978-3-11-017258-4 – via Google Books.
- Wexler, Paul (2007). "Yiddish Evidence for the Khazar Component in the Ashkenazic ethnogenesis". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbuch der Orientalistik: Handbook of Uralic studies. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 387–398. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- Whittow, David (1996). The Making of Byzantium, 600–1025. University of California Press. ISBN 978-0-520-20496-6 – via Google Books.
- Xin, Tangshu. New Book of Tang (in Chinese). Vol. 217a Huihe.
- Zhivkov, Boris (2015). Khazaria in the Ninth and Tenth Centuries. BRILL. ISBN 978-9-004-29448-6 – via Google Books.
- Zimonyi, István (1990). Szõnyi-Sándor, Klára (ed.). The Origins of the Volga Bulghars. Studia Uralo-Altaica, 32. ISBN 978-963481839-7.
- Zuckerman, Constantine (1995). "On the date of the Khazars' Conversion to Judaism and the Chronology of the Kings of the Rus' Oleg and Igor". Revue des études byzantines. 53: 237–270. doi:10.3406/rebyz.1995.1906.
- Zuckerman, Constantine (2007). "The Khazars and Byzantium –The First Encounter". In Golden, Peter B.; Ben-Shammai, Haggai; Róna-Tas, András (eds.). The World of the Khazars: New Perspectives. Handbuch der Orientalistik: Handbook of Uralic studies. Vol. 17. Brill. pp. 399–431. ISBN 978-90-04-16042-2 – via Google Books.
- "КАСПИЙСКОЕ МОРЕ перевод [CASPIAN SEA translation]". Русско-крымскотатарский словарь (кириллица) [Russian-Crimean Tatar Dictionary (Cyrillic)] (in Russian).
External links
- The Kievan Letter scan in the Cambridge University Library collection.
- Khazaria.com
- Resources – Medieval Jewish History – The Khazars The Jewish History Resource Center, Project of the Dinur Center for Research in Jewish History, The Hebrew University of Jerusalem
- Khazar Historic Maps at the Wayback Machine (archived 26 October 2009)
- The Kitab al-Khazari of Judah Hallevi, full English translation at sacred-texts.com
- Ancient lost capital of the Khazar kingdom found
- Khazars
- Ancient peoples of Russia
- Ashina tribe
- Barbarian kingdoms
- Groups who converted to Judaism
- History of Kuban
- Jewish polities
- Khanates
- Khanates of the North Caucasus
- Saltovo-Mayaki culture
- States and territories disestablished in the 960s
- States and territories established in the 650s
- Turkic peoples of Europe
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khazars
Kazan
Казань | |
---|---|
City of republic significance[1] | |
Location of Kazan | |
Coordinates: 55°47′47″N 49°06′32″ECoordinates: 55°47′47″N 49°06′32″E | |
Country | Russia |
Federal subject | Tatarstan[1] |
Founded | 1005[2] |
Government | |
• Body | City Duma[3] |
• Mayor[4] | Ilsur Metshin[4] |
Area | |
• Total | 425.3 km2 (164.2 sq mi) |
Elevation | 60 m (200 ft) |
Population | |
• Total | 1,143,535 |
• Estimate (2018)[7] | 1,243,500 (+8.7%) |
• Rank | 8th in 2010 |
• Density | 2,700/km2 (7,000/sq mi) |
• Subordinated to | city of republic significance of Kazan[1] |
• Capital of | Republic of Tatarstan[8] |
• Capital of | city of republic significance of Kazan[1] |
• Urban okrug | Kazan Urban Okrug[9] |
• Capital of | Kazan Urban Okrug[9] |
Time zone | UTC+3 (MSK [10]) |
Postal code(s)[11] | 420xxx |
Dialing code(s) | +7 843[12] |
OKTMO ID | 92701000001 |
City Day | 30 August[13] |
Website | www |
Kazan (/kəˈzæn, -ˈzɑːn/ kə-ZAN, -ZAHN; Russian: Казань, IPA: [kɐˈzanʲ]; Tatar: Казан, IPA: [qɑzan])[14] is the largest city and capital of Tatarstan, Russia. The city lies at the confluence of the Volga and the Kazanka rivers, covering an area of 425.3 square kilometres (164.2 square miles), with a population of over 1.3 million residents,[15] up to roughly 1.7 million residents in the metropolitan area. Kazan is the fifth-largest city in Russia, and the most populous city on the Volga, as well as the Volga Federal District.
Kazan became the capital of the Khanate of Kazan and was conquered by Ivan the Terrible in the 16th century, becoming a part of the Tsardom of Russia. The city was seized and largely destroyed during Pugachev's Rebellion of 1773–1775, but was later rebuilt during the reign of Catherine the Great. In the following centuries, Kazan grew to become a major industrial, cultural and religious centre of Russia. In 1920, after the Russian SFSR became a part of the Soviet Union, Kazan became the capital of the Tatar ASSR. Following the dissolution of the Soviet Union, Kazan remained the capital of the Republic of Tatarstan.
Kazan is renowned for its vibrant mix of Tatar and Russian cultures.[16] In 2015, 2.1 million tourists visited Kazan, and 1.5 million tourists visited the Kazan Kremlin, a World Heritage Site.[17] In April 2009, the Russian Patent Office granted Kazan the right to brand itself as the "Third Capital of Russia".[18] In 2009 it was chosen as the "Sports capital of Russia",[19] and it still is referred to as such.[20] Kazan hosted the 2013 Summer Universiade, and was one of the host cities of the 2018 FIFA World Cup.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kazan
Khanate of Kazan Казан ханлыгы | |||||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
1438–1552 | |||||||||
Status | Independent
(1438–1521, 1551–1552)Vassal of the Crimean Khanate
(1521–1551) | ||||||||
Capital | Kazan | ||||||||
Official languages |
| ||||||||
Common languages | Turkic (Tatar, Chuvash), Mari | ||||||||
Religion | Islam, Shamanism | ||||||||
Government | Khanate | ||||||||
Kazan Khan | |||||||||
• 1438–1445 | Olug Moxammat (first) | ||||||||
• March-October 1552 | Yadegar Moxammat (last) | ||||||||
History | |||||||||
• Established | 1438 | ||||||||
• Annexed to Muscovy | 1552 | ||||||||
| |||||||||
Today part of | Russia |
History of Russia |
---|
|
|
Russia portal |
History of Tatarstan |
---|
History of Udmurtia |
---|
The Khanate of Kazan (Tatar: Казан ханлыгы, romanized: Kazan xanlıgı; Russian: Казанское ханство, romanized: Kazanskoye khanstvo) or Tsardom of Kazan[1] was a medieval Tatar Turkic state that occupied the territory of former Volga Bulgaria between 1438 and 1552. The khanate covered contemporary Tatarstan, Mari El, Chuvashia, Mordovia, and parts of Udmurtia and Bashkortostan; its capital was the city of Kazan. It was one of the successor states of the Golden Horde (Kipchak Khanate), and it came to an end when it was conquered by the Tsardom of Russia.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khanate_of_Kazan
Volga Bulgaria | |||||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
late 9th century–1240s | |||||||||
Capital | Bolghar Bilär | ||||||||
Common languages | Bulgar | ||||||||
Religion | Tengrism, later Sunni Islam (after Almish Iltäbär) | ||||||||
Government | Monarchy | ||||||||
Ruler | |||||||||
• 9th century | Şilki | ||||||||
• 10th century | Almış, Ahmad, Mikaʾil, Abdallah, Talib, Muʾmin I, Muʾmin II, Shamgun | ||||||||
• 11th-13th centuries | Khaidar, Mukhammad, Saʾid, Baradz, Ibrahim, Otyak, Ghabdula Chelbir, Ilham Khan | ||||||||
Historical era | Middle Ages | ||||||||
• Established | late 9th century | ||||||||
• Conversion to Islam | 922 | ||||||||
1240s | |||||||||
| |||||||||
Today part of | Russia |
History of Tatarstan |
---|
Volga Bulgaria or Volga–Kama Bulgaria, was a historical Turkic[1][2][3] state that existed between the 9th and 13th centuries around the confluence of the Volga and Kama River, in what is now European Russia. Volga Bulgaria was a multi-ethnic state with large numbers of Turkic Bulgars, a variety of Finnic and Ugric peoples, and many East Slavs.[4] Its strategic position allowed it to create a local trade monopoly with Norse, Cumans, and Pannonian Avars.[5]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Volga_Bulgaria
Historically, the Ugrians[1][2] or Ugors were the ancestors of the Hungarians of Central Europe, and the Khanty and Mansi people of the Khanty-Mansi Autonomous Okrug of Russia. The name is sometimes also used in a modern context as a cover term for these two peoples, formerly called "Ugrian Finns".[3]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ugrians
| |||
|
| |||
|
| |||
Languages | |||
---|---|---|---|
Hungarian | |||
Religion | |||
Majority Christianity (Roman Catholicism,[25] Protestantism (chiefly Calvinism, Unitarianism, and Lutheranism), and Greek Catholicism) Minority Judaism; Islam; irreligious |
Hungarians, also known as Magyars (/ˈmæɡjɑːrz/ MAG-yarz;[26] Hungarian: magyarok [ˈmɒɟɒrok]), are a nation and ethnic group native to Hungary (Hungarian: Magyarország) and historical Hungarian lands who share a common culture, history, ancestry and language. The Hungarian language belongs to the Uralic language family. There are an estimated 15 million ethnic Hungarians and their descendants worldwide, of whom 9.6 million live in today's Hungary.[1] About 2 million Hungarians live in areas that were part of the Kingdom of Hungary before the Treaty of Trianon in 1920 and are now parts of Hungary's seven neighbouring countries, Slovakia, Ukraine, Romania, Serbia, Croatia, Slovenia, and Austria. Significant groups of people with Hungarian ancestry live in various other parts of the world, most of them in the United States, Canada, Germany, France, the United Kingdom, Chile, Brazil, Australia, and Argentina.
Hungarians can be divided into several subgroups according to local linguistic and cultural characteristics; subgroups with distinct identities include the Székelys (in eastern Transylvania), the Csángós (in Western Moldavia), the Palóc, and the Matyó.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hungarians
Classification
The Uralic family comprises nine undisputed groups with no consensus classification between them. (Some of the proposals are listed in the next section.) An agnostic approach treats them as separate branches.[33][34]
Obsolete or native names are displayed in italics.
- Finnic (Fennic, Baltic Finnic, Balto-Finnic, Balto-Fennic)
- Hungarian (Magyar)
- Khanty (Ostyak, Handi, Hantõ)
- Mansi (Vogul)
- Mari (Cheremis)
- Mordvinic (Mordvin, Mordvinian)
- Permic (Permian)
- Sami (Saami, Samic, Saamic, Lappic, Lappish)
- Samoyedic (Samoyed)
There is also historical evidence of a number of extinct languages of uncertain affiliation:
- Merya
- Muromian
- Meshcherian (until 16th century?)
Traces of Finno-Ugric substrata, especially in toponymy, in the northern part of European Russia have been proposed as evidence for even more extinct Uralic languages.[35]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Uralic_languages#Classification
Meryan | |
---|---|
Extinct | (date missing) |
Language codes | |
ISO 639-3 | – |
Merya or Meryanic is an extinct Finno-Ugric language, which was spoken by the Meryans.[1][2] Merya began to be assimilated by East Slavs when their territory became incorporated into Kievan Rus' in the 10th century.[3][4] However some Merya speakers might have even lived in the 18th century.[5] There is also a theory that the word for "Moscow" originates from the Merya language.[6][7] The Meryan language stretched to the western parts of Vologda Oblast and Moscow.[8]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Merya_language
Усходнія славяне / Uskhodniya slavyane (Belarusian) Восточные славяне / Vostochnyye slavyane (Russian) Восточны славяне / Vostochny slaviane (Rusyn) Східні слов'яни / Skhidni sloviany (Ukrainian) | |
---|---|
Total population | |
200+ million[citation needed] | |
Regions with significant populations | |
Majority: Belarus, Russia, Ukraine[citation needed] Minority: Baltics (Estonia, Latvia, Lithuania), Serbia, Caucasus (Azerbaijan, Georgia), Moldova, Turkey, United States, Canada, other former Soviet states.[citation needed] | |
Languages | |
East Slavic languages: Belarusian, Russian, Rusyn, Ukrainian | |
Related ethnic groups | |
Other Slavs |
The East Slavs are the most populous subgroup of the Slavs.[2] They speak the East Slavic languages,[3] and formed the majority of the population of the medieval state Kievan Rus', which they claim as their cultural ancestor.[4][5] Today, the East Slavs consist of Belarusians, Russians, Rusyns, and Ukrainians.[6]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/East_Slavs
Finno-Ugric | |
---|---|
Finno-Ugrian | |
Geographic distribution | Eastern, Central and Northern Europe, North Asia |
Linguistic classification | Uralic
|
Subdivisions | |
ISO 639-2 / 5 | fiu |
Glottolog | None |
The Finno-Ugric languages |
Finno-Ugric (/ˌfɪnoʊˈjuːɡrɪk/ or /ˌfɪnoʊˈuːɡrɪk/; Fenno-Ugric)[1] or Finno-Ugrian (Fenno-Ugrian), is a traditional grouping of all languages in the Uralic language family except the Samoyedic languages. Its formerly commonly accepted status as a subfamily of Uralic is based on criteria formulated in the 19th century and is criticized by some contemporary linguists such as Tapani Salminen and Ante Aikio as inaccurate and misleading.[2][3] The three most-spoken Uralic languages, Hungarian, Finnish, and Estonian, are all included in Finno-Ugric, although linguistic roots common to both branches of the traditional Finno-Ugric language tree (Finno-Permic and Ugric) are distant.
The term Finno-Ugric, which originally referred to the entire family, is sometimes used as a synonym for the term Uralic, which includes the Samoyedic languages,[4] as commonly happens when a language family is expanded with further discoveries.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Finno-Ugric_languages
Meshchera | |
---|---|
Extinct | (date missing) |
Language codes | |
ISO 639-3 | – |
Map |
Meshchera is an extinct Uralic language. It was spoken around the left bank of the Middle Oka. Meshchera was either a Mordvinic or a Permic language.[1][2] Pauli Rahkonen has suggested on the basis of toponymic evidence that it was a Permic or closely related language.[3] Rahkonen's speculation has been criticized by Vladimir Napolskikh.[4] Some Meshchera speaking people possibly assimilated into Mishar Tatars.[3] However this theory is disputed.[5]
The first Russian written source which mentions them is the Tolkovaya Paleya, from the 13th century. They are also mentioned in several later Russian chronicles from the period before the 16th century, and even later, in one of the letters by Andrey Kurbsky written in the second half of the 16th century, where he claimed the language spoken in the Meshchera region to be Mordvinic.[6]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Meshchera_language
Traces of Finno-Ugric substrata, especially in toponymy, in the northern part of European Russia have been proposed as evidence for even more extinct Uralic languages.[35]
Traditional classification
All Uralic languages are thought to have descended, through independent processes of language change, from Proto-Uralic. The internal structure of the Uralic family has been debated since the family was first proposed.[36] Doubts about the validity of most or all of the proposed higher-order branchings (grouping the nine undisputed families) are becoming more common.[36][37][3]
A traditional classification of the Uralic languages has existed since the late 19th century.[38] It has enjoyed frequent adaptation in whole or in part in encyclopedias, handbooks, and overviews of the Uralic family. Otto Donner's model from 1879 is as follows:
- Ugric (Ugrian)
- Finno-Permic (Permian-Finnic)
- Permic
- Finno-Volgaic (Finno-Cheremisic, Finno-Mari)
- Volga-Finnic
- Finno-Lappic (Finno-Saamic, Finno-Samic)
At Donner's time, the Samoyedic languages were still poorly known, and he was not able to address their position. As they became better known in the early 20th century, they were found to be quite divergent, and they were assumed to have separated already early on. The terminology adopted for this was "Uralic" for the entire family, "Finno-Ugric" for the non-Samoyedic languages (though "Finno-Ugric" has, to this day, remained in use also as a synonym for the whole family). Finno-Ugric and Samoyedic are listed in ISO 639-5 as primary branches of Uralic.
The following table lists nodes of the traditional family tree that are recognized in some overview sources.
Year | Author(s) | Finno- Ugric |
Ugric | Ob-Ugric | Finno- Permic |
Finno- Volgaic |
Volga- Finnic |
Finno- Samic |
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
1910 | Szinnyei[39] | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✗ | ✓ |
1921 | T. I. Itkonen[40] | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✗ |
1926 | Setälä[41] | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✗ |
1962 | Hajdú[42][43] | ✓ | ✗[a] | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✗[a] | ✗ |
1965 | Collinder[13] | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✗ | ✗ | ✗ |
1966 | E. Itkonen[44] | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ |
1968 | Austerlitz[45] | ✗[b] | ✓ | ✓ | ✗[b] | ✗ | ✓ | ✗ |
1977 | Voegelin & Voegelin[46] | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ |
2002 | Kulonen[47] | ✗ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✗ | ✗ | ✓ |
2002 | Michalove[48] | ✗ | ✗ | ✓ | ✓ | ✗ |
| |
2007 | Häkkinen[49] | ✗ | ✗[c] | ✓ | ✓ | ✗ | ✗ | ✗[c] |
2007 | Lehtinen[50] | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✓ | ✗ | ✓ |
2007 | Salminen[33] | ✗ | ✗ | ✗ | ✗ | ✗ | ✗ | ✗ |
2009 | Janhunen[6] | ✓ | ✗[d] | ✗ | ✓ | ✓ | ✗ | ✗? |
a. Hajdú describes the Ugric and Volgaic groups as areal units.
b. Austerlitz accepts narrower-than-traditional Finno-Ugric and Finno-Permic groups that exclude Samic
c. Häkkinen groups Hungarian, Ob-Ugric and Samoyed into a Ugro-Samoyed branch, and groups Balto-Finnic, Sami and Mordvin into a Finno-Mordvin branch
d. Janhunen accepts a reduced Ugric branch, called 'Mansic', that includes Hungarian and Mansi
Little explicit evidence has however been presented in favour of Donner's model since his original proposal, and numerous alternate schemes have been proposed. Especially in Finland, there has been a growing tendency to reject the Finno-Ugric intermediate protolanguage.[37][51] A recent competing proposal instead unites Ugric and Samoyedic in an "East Uralic" group for which shared innovations can be noted.[52]
The Finno-Permic grouping still holds some support, though the arrangement of its subgroups is a matter of some dispute. Mordvinic is commonly seen as particularly closely related to or part of Finno-Samic.[53] The term Volgaic (or Volga-Finnic) was used to denote a branch previously believed to include Mari, Mordvinic and a number of the extinct languages, but it is now obsolete[37] and considered a geographic classification rather than a linguistic one.
Within Ugric, uniting Mansi with Hungarian rather than Khanty has been a competing hypothesis to Ob-Ugric.
Lexical isoglosses
Lexicostatistics has been used in defense of the traditional family tree. A recent re-evaluation of the evidence[48] however fails to find support for Finno-Ugric and Ugric, suggesting four lexically distinct branches (Finno-Permic, Hungarian, Ob-Ugric and Samoyedic).
One alternate proposal for a family tree, with emphasis on the development of numerals, is as follows:[6]
- Uralic (*kektä "2", *wixti "5" / "10")
- Samoyedic (*op "1", *ketä "2", *näkur "3", *tettə "4", *səmpəleŋkə "5", *məktut "6", *sejtwə "7", *wiət "10")
- Finno-Ugric (*üki/*ükti "1", *kormi "3", *ńeljä "4", *wiiti "5", *kuuti "6", *luki "10")
- Mansic
- Mansi
- Hungarian (hét "7"; replacement egy "1")
- Finno-Khantic (reshaping *kolmi "3" on the analogy of "4")
- Khanty
- Finno-Permic (reshaping *kektä > *kakta)
- Permic
- Finno-Volgaic (*śećem "7")
- Mari
- Finno-Saamic (*kakteksa, *ükteksa "8, 9")
- Saamic
- Finno-Mordvinic (replacement *kümmen "10" (*luki- "to count", "to read out"))
- Mordvinic
- Finnic
- Mansic
Phonological isoglosses
Another proposed tree, more divergent from the standard, focusing on consonant isoglosses (which does not consider the position of the Samoyedic languages) is presented by Viitso (1997),[54] and refined in Viitso (2000):[55]
- Finno-Ugric
- Saamic–Fennic (consonant gradation)
- Saamic
- Fennic
- Eastern Finno-Ugric
- Mordva
- (node)
- Mari
- Permian–Ugric (*δ > *l)
- Permian
- Ugric (*s *š *ś > *ɬ *ɬ *s)
- Hungarian
- Khanty
- Mansi
- Saamic–Fennic (consonant gradation)
The grouping of the four bottom-level branches remains to some degree open to interpretation, with competing models of Finno-Saamic vs. Eastern Finno-Ugric (Mari, Mordvinic, Permic-Ugric; *k > ɣ between vowels, degemination of stops) and Finno-Volgaic (Finno-Saamic, Mari, Mordvinic; *δʲ > *ð between vowels) vs. Permic-Ugric. Viitso finds no evidence for a Finno-Permic grouping.
Extending this approach to cover the Samoyedic languages suggests affinity with Ugric, resulting in the aforementioned East Uralic grouping, as it also shares the same sibilant developments. A further non-trivial Ugric-Samoyedic isogloss is the reduction *k, *x, *w > ɣ when before *i, and after a vowel (cf. *k > ɣ above), or adjacent to *t, *s, *š, or *ś.[52]
Finno-Ugric consonant developments after Viitso (2000); Samoyedic changes after Sammallahti (1988)[56]
Saamic | Finnic | Mordvinic | Mari | Permic | Hungarian | Mansi | Khanty | Samoyedic | ||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
Medial lenition of *k | no | no | yes | yes | yes | yes | yes | yes | yes | |
Medial lenition of *p, *t | no | no | yes | yes | yes | yes | no | no | no | |
Degemination | no | no | yes | yes | yes | yes | yes | yes | yes | |
Consonant gradation | yes | yes | no | no | no | no | no | no | yes | |
Development of | *δ | *ð | *t | *t | ∅ | *l | /l/ | *l | *l | *r |
*δʲ | /ð/ | *lʲ | /ɟ/ ⟨gy⟩, /j/ | *lʲ | *j | *j | ||||
*s | *s | *s | *s | /ʃ/ | *s | ∅ | *t | *ɬ | *t | |
*š | *h | *š | *š | |||||||
*ś | *ć | *s | *ś | *ś | /s/ ⟨sz⟩ | *ʃ | *s | *s | ||
*ć | *ć | /tʃ/ ⟨cs⟩ | *ć | *ć |
- Note: Proto-Khanty *ɬ in many of the dialects yields *t; Häkkinen assumes this also happened in Mansi and Samoyedic.
The inverse relationship between consonant gradation and medial lenition of stops (the pattern also continuing within the three families where gradation is found) is noted by Helimski (1995): an original allophonic gradation system between voiceless and voiced stops would have been easily disrupted by a spreading of voicing to previously unvoiced stops as well.[57]
Honkola, et al. (2013)
A computational phylogenetic study by Honkola, et al. (2013)[58] classifies the Uralic languages as follows. Estimated divergence dates from Honkola, et al. (2013) are also given.
- Uralic (5300 YBP)
- Samoyedic
- Finno-Ugric (3900 YBP)
Typology
Structural characteristics generally said to be typical of Uralic languages include:
Grammar
- extensive use of independent suffixes (agglutination)
- a large set of grammatical cases
marked with agglutinative suffixes (13–14 cases on average; mainly
later developments: Proto-Uralic is reconstructed with 6 cases), e.g.:
- Erzya: 12 cases
- Estonian: 14 cases (15 cases with instructive)
- Finnish: 15 cases
- Hungarian: 18 cases (together 34 grammatical cases and case-like suffixes)
- Inari Sami: 9 cases
- Komi: in certain dialects as many as 27 cases
- Moksha: 13 cases
- Nenets: 7 cases
- North Sami: 6 cases
- Udmurt: 16 cases
- Veps: 24 cases
- unique Uralic case system, from which all modern Uralic languages derive their case systems.
- nominative singular has no case suffix.
- accusative and genitive suffixes are nasal consonants (-n, -m, etc.)
- three-way distinction in the local case system, with each set of local cases being divided into forms corresponding roughly to "from", "to", and "in/at"; especially evident, e.g. in Hungarian, Finnish and Estonian, which have several sets of local cases, such as the "inner", "outer" and "on top" systems in Hungarian, while in Finnish the "on top" forms have merged to the "outer" forms.
- the Uralic locative suffix exists in all Uralic languages in various cases, e.g. Hungarian superessive, Finnish essive (-na), North Sami essive, Erzyan inessive, and Nenets locative.
- the Uralic lative suffix exists in various cases in many Uralic languages, e.g. Hungarian illative, Finnish lative (-s as in ulos 'out' and rannemmas 'more towards the shore'), Erzyan illative, Komi approximative, and Northern Sami locative.
- a lack of grammatical gender, including one pronoun for both he and she; for example, hän in Finnish, tämä in Votic, tämā or ta (short form for tämā) in Livonian,[59] tema or ta (short form for tema) in Estonian, sijə in Komi, ő in Hungarian.
- negative verb, which exists in almost all Uralic languages (notably absent in Hungarian)
- use of postpositions as opposed to prepositions (prepositions are uncommon).
- possessive suffixes
- the genitive is also used to express possession in some languages, e.g. Estonian mu koer, colloquial Finnish mun koira, Northern Sami mu beana 'my dog' (literally 'dog of me'). Separate possessive adjectives and possessive pronouns, such as my and your, are rare.
- dual, in the Samoyedic, Ob-Ugric and Samic languages and reconstructed for Proto-Uralic
- plural markers -j (i) and -t (-d, -q) have a common origin (e.g. in Finnish, Estonian, Võro, Erzya, Samic languages, Samoyedic languages). Hungarian, however, has -i- before the possessive suffixes and -k elsewhere. The plural marker -k is also used in the Samic languages, but there is a regular merging of final -k and -t in Samic, so it can come from either ending.
- Possessions are expressed by a possessor in the adessive or dative case, the verb "be" (the copula, instead of the verb "have") and the possessed with or without a possessive suffix. The grammatical subject of the sentence is thus the possessed. In Finnish, for example, the possessor is in the adessive case: "Minulla on kala", literally "At me is fish", i.e. "I have a fish", whereas in Hungarian, the possessor is in the dative case, but appears overtly only if it is contrastive, while the possessed has a possessive ending indicating the number and person of the possessor: "(Nekem) van egy halam", literally "(To me [dative]) is a fish-my" ("(For me) there is a fish of mine"), i.e. "(As for me,) I have a fish".
- expressions that include a numeral are singular if they refer to things which form a single group, e.g. "négy csomó" in Hungarian, "njeallje čuolmma" in Northern Sami, "neli sõlme" in Estonian, and "neljä solmua" in Finnish, each of which means "four knots", but the literal approximation is "four knot". (This approximation is accurate only for Hungarian among these examples, as in Northern Sami the noun is in the singular accusative/genitive case and in Finnish and Estonian the singular noun is in the partitive case, such that the number points to a part of a larger mass, like "four of knot(s)".)
Phonology
- Vowel harmony: this is present in many but by no means all Uralic languages. It exists in Hungarian and various Baltic-Finnic languages, and is present to some degree elsewhere, such as in Mordvinic, Mari, Eastern Khanty, and Samoyedic. It is lacking in Sami, Permic and standard Estonian, while it does exist in Võro and elsewhere in South Estonian, as well as in Kihnu Island subdialect of North Estonian.[60][61][62] (Although double dot diacritics are used in writing Uralic languages, the languages do not exhibit Germanic umlaut, a different type of vowel assimilation.)
- Large vowel inventories. For example, some Selkup varieties have over twenty different monophthongs, and Estonian has over twenty different diphthongs.
- Palatalization of consonants; in this context, palatalization means a secondary articulation, where the middle of the tongue is tense. For example, pairs like [ɲ] – [n], or [c] – [t] are contrasted in Hungarian, as in hattyú [hɒcːuː] "swan". Some Sami languages, for example Skolt Sami, distinguish three degrees: plain ⟨l⟩ [l], palatalized ⟨'l⟩ [lʲ], and palatal ⟨lj⟩ [ʎ], where ⟨'l⟩ has a primary alveolar articulation, while ⟨lj⟩ has a primary palatal articulation. Original Uralic palatalization is phonemic, independent of the following vowel and traceable to the millennia-old Proto-Uralic. It is different from Slavic palatalization, which is of more recent origin. The Finnic languages have lost palatalization, but several of them have reacquired it, so Finnic palatalization (where extant) was originally dependent on the following vowel and does not correlate to palatalization elsewhere in Uralic.
- Lack of phonologically contrastive tone.
- In many Uralic languages, the stress is always on the first syllable, though Nganasan shows (essentially) penultimate stress, and a number of languages of the central region (Erzya, Mari, Udmurt and Komi-Permyak) synchronically exhibit a lexical accent. The Erzya language can vary its stress in words to give specific nuances to sentential meaning.
Lexicography
Basic vocabulary of about 200 words, including body parts (e.g. eye, heart, head, foot, mouth), family members (e.g. father, mother-in-law), animals (e.g. viper, partridge, fish), nature objects (e.g. tree, stone, nest, water), basic verbs (e.g. live, fall, run, make, see, suck, go, die, swim, know), basic pronouns (e.g. who, what, we, you, I), numerals (e.g. two, five); derivatives increase the number of common words.
Selected cognates
The following is a very brief selection of cognates in basic vocabulary across the Uralic family, which may serve to give an idea of the sound changes involved. This is not a list of translations: cognates have a common origin, but their meaning may be shifted and loanwords may have replaced them.
English | Proto-Uralic | Finnic | Sámi | Mordvin | Mari | Permic | Hungarian | Mansi | Khanty | Samoyed | ||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
Finnish | Estonian | Võro | South | North | Kildin | Erzya | Meadow | Komi | Udmurt | Northern | Kazym | Vakh | Tundra Nenets | |||
'fire' | *tule | tuli (tule-) |
tuli (tule-) |
tuli (tulõ-) |
dålle [tolːə] |
dolla | tōll | tol | tul | tɨl- | tɨl | – | – | – | – | tuu |
'water' | *wete | vesi (vete-) |
vesi (vee-) |
vesi (vii-) |
– | – | – | ved´ | wüt | va | vu | víz | wit | – | – | jiʔ |
'ice' | *jäŋe | jää | jää | ijä | jïenge [jɨeŋə] |
jiekŋa | īŋŋ | ej | i | ji | jə | jég | jaaŋk | jeŋk | jeŋk | – |
'fish' | *kala | kala | kala | kala | guelie [kʉelie] |
guolli | kūll’ | kal | kol | – | – | hal | xuul | xŭɬ | kul | xalʲa |
'nest' | *pesä | pesä | pesa | pesä | biesie [piesie] |
beassi | piess’ | pize | pəžaš | poz | puz | fészek | pitʲi | – | pĕl | pʲidʲa |
'hand, arm' | *käte | käsi (käte-) |
käsi (käe-) |
käsi (käe-) |
gïete [kɨedə] |
giehta | kīdt | ked´ | kit | ki | ki | kéz | kaat | – | köt | – |
'eye' | *śilmä | silmä | silm (silma-) |
silm (silmä-) |
tjelmie [t͡ʃɛlmie] |
čalbmi | čall’m | śeĺme | šinča | śin (śinm-) |
śin (śinm-) |
szem | sam | sem | sem | sæwə |
'fathom' | *süle | syli (syle-) |
süli (süle-) |
– | sïlle [sʲɨllə] |
salla | sē̮ll | seĺ | šülö | sɨl | sul | öl(el) | tal | ɬăɬ | lö̆l | tʲíbʲa |
'vein / sinew' | *sëne | suoni (suone-) |
soon (soone-) |
suuń (soonõ-) |
soene [suonə] |
suotna | sūnn | san | šün | sən | sən | ín | taan | ɬɔn | lan | teʔ |
'bone' | *luwe | luu | luu | luu | – | – | – | lovaža | lu | lɨ | lɨ | – | luw | ɬŭw | lŏγ | le |
'blood' | *were | veri | veri | veri | vïrre [vʲɨrrə] |
varra | vē̮rr | veŕ | wür | vur | vir | vér | wiɣr | wŭr | wər | – |
'liver' | *mëksa | maksa | maks (maksa-) |
mass (massa-) |
mueksie [mʉeksie] |
– | – | makso | mokš | mus | mus (musk-) |
máj | maat | mŏxəɬ | muγəl | mudə |
'urine' / 'to urinate' |
*kuńśe | kusi (kuse-) |
kusi (kuse-) |
kusi (kusõ-) |
gadtjedh (gadtje-) [kɑdd͡ʒə]- |
gožžat (gožža-) |
kōnnče | – | kəž | kudź | kɨź | húgy | xuńś- | xŏs- | kŏs- | – |
'to go' | *mene- | mennä (men-) |
minema | minemä | mïnnedh [mʲɨnnə]- |
mannat | mē̮nne | – | mija- | mun- | mɨn- | menni | men- | măn- | mĕn- | mʲin- |
'to live' | *elä- | elää (elä-) |
elama (ela-) |
elämä (elä-) |
jieledh [jielə]- |
eallit | jēll’e | – | ila- | ol- | ul- | él- | – | – | – | jilʲe- |
'to die' | *kale- | kuolla (kuol-) |
koolma | kuulma (kool-) |
– | – | – | kulo- | kola- | kul- | kul- | hal- | xool- | xăɬ- | kăla- | xa- |
'to wash' | *mośke- | – | – | mõskma | – | – | – | muśke- | muška- | mɨśkɨ- | mɨśk- | mos- | – | – | – | masø- |
Orthographical notes: The hacek denotes postalveolar articulation (⟨ž⟩ [ʒ], ⟨š⟩ [ʃ], ⟨č⟩ [t͡ʃ]) (In Northern Sami, (⟨ž⟩ [dʒ]), while the acute denotes a secondary palatal articulation (⟨ś⟩ [sʲ ~ ɕ], ⟨ć⟩ [tsʲ ~ tɕ], ⟨l⟩ [lʲ]) or, in Hungarian, vowel length. The Finnish letter ⟨y⟩ and the letter ⟨ü⟩ in other languages represent the high rounded vowel [y]; the letters ⟨ä⟩ and ⟨ö⟩ are the front vowels [æ] and [ø].
As is apparent from the list, Finnish is the most conservative of the Uralic languages presented here, with nearly half the words on the list above identical to their Proto-Uralic reconstructions and most of the remainder only having minor changes, such as the conflation of *ś into /s/, or widespread changes such as the loss of *x and alteration of *ï. Finnish has even preserved old Indo-European borrowings relatively unchanged as well. (An example is porsas ("pig"), loaned from Proto-Indo-European *porḱos or pre-Proto-Indo-Iranian *porśos, unchanged since loaning save for loss of palatalization, *ś > s.)
Mutual intelligibility
The Estonian philologist Mall Hellam proposed cognate sentences that she asserted to be mutually intelligible among the three most widely spoken Uralic languages: Finnish, Estonian, and Hungarian:[63]
- Estonian: Elav kala ujub vee all.
- Finnish: Elävä kala ui veden alla.
- Hungarian: (Egy) élő hal úszik a víz alatt.
- English: A living fish swims underwater.
However, linguist Geoffrey Pullum reports that neither Finns nor Hungarians could understand the other language's version of the sentence.[64]
Comparison
No Uralic language has exactly the idealized typological profile of the family. Typological features with varying presence among the modern Uralic language groups include:[65]
Feature | Samoyedic | Ob-Ugric | Hungarian | Permic | Mari | Mordvin | Finnic | Samic |
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
Palatalization | + | + | + | + | − | + | − | + |
Consonant length | − | − | + | − | − | − | + | + |
Consonant gradation | −1 | − | − | − | − | − | + | + |
Vowel harmony | −2 | −2 | + | − | + | + | +3 | − |
Grammatical vowel alternation (ablaut or umlaut) |
+ | + | − | − | − | − | −4 | + |
Dual number | + | + | − | − | − | − | − | + |
Distinction between inner and outer local cases |
− | − | + | + | + | + | + | − |
Determinative inflection (verbal marking of definiteness) |
+ | + | + | − | − | + | − | − |
Passive voice | − | + | + | − | − | + | + | + |
Negative verb | + | − | − | + | + | ± | + | + |
SVO word order | − | − | − | ±5 | − | + | + | + |
Notes:
- Clearly present only in Nganasan.
- Vowel harmony is present in the Uralic languages of Siberia only in some marginal archaic varieties: Nganasan, Southern Mansi and Eastern Khanty.
- Only recently lost in modern Estonian
- A number of umlaut processes are found in Livonian.
- In Komi, but not in Udmurt.
Proposed relations with other language families
Many relationships between Uralic and other language families have been suggested, but none of these is generally accepted by linguists at the present time: All of the following hypotheses are minority views at the present time in Uralic studies.
Uralic-Yukaghir
The Uralic–Yukaghir hypothesis identifies Uralic and Yukaghir as independent members of a single language family. It is currently widely accepted that the similarities between Uralic and Yukaghir languages are due to ancient contacts.[66] Regardless, the hypothesis is accepted by a few linguists and viewed as attractive by a somewhat larger number.
Eskimo-Uralic
The Eskimo–Uralic hypothesis associates Uralic with the Eskimo–Aleut languages. This is an old thesis whose antecedents go back to the 18th century. An important restatement of it was made by Bergsland (1959).[67]
Uralo-Siberian
Uralo-Siberian is an expanded form of the Eskimo–Uralic hypothesis. It associates Uralic with Yukaghir, Chukotko-Kamchatkan, and Eskimo–Aleut. It was propounded by Michael Fortescue in 1998.[68] Michael Fortescue (2017) presented new evidence in favor for a connection between Uralic and other Paleo-Siberian languages.[69]
Ural-Altaic
Theories proposing a close relationship with the Altaic languages were formerly popular, based on similarities in vocabulary as well as in grammatical and phonological features, in particular the similarities in the Uralic and Altaic pronouns and the presence of agglutination in both sets of languages, as well as vowel harmony in some. For example, the word for "language" is similar in Estonian (keel) and Mongolian (хэл (hel)). These theories are now generally rejected[70] and most such similarities are attributed to language contact or coincidence.
Indo-Uralic
The Indo-Uralic (or "Indo-Euralic") hypothesis suggests that Uralic and Indo-European are related at a fairly close level or, in its stronger form, that they are more closely related than either is to any other language family.
Uralo-Dravidian
The hypothesis that the Dravidian languages display similarities with the Uralic language group, suggesting a prolonged period of contact in the past,[71] is popular amongst Dravidian linguists and has been supported by a number of scholars, including Robert Caldwell,[72] Thomas Burrow,[73] Kamil Zvelebil,[74] and Mikhail Andronov.[75] This hypothesis has, however, been rejected by some specialists in Uralic languages,[76] and has in recent times also been criticised by other Dravidian linguists, such as Bhadriraju Krishnamurti.[77]
Nostratic
Nostratic associates Uralic, Indo-European, Altaic, Dravidian, Afroasiatic, and various other language families of Asia. The Nostratic hypothesis was first propounded by Holger Pedersen in 1903[78] and subsequently revived by Vladislav Illich-Svitych and Aharon Dolgopolsky in the 1960s.
Eurasiatic
Eurasiatic resembles Nostratic in including Uralic, Indo-European, and Altaic, but differs from it in excluding the South Caucasian languages, Dravidian, and Afroasiatic and including Chukotko-Kamchatkan, Nivkh, Ainu, and Eskimo–Aleut. It was propounded by Joseph Greenberg in 2000–2002.[79][80] Similar ideas had earlier been expressed by Heinrich Koppelmann in 1933 and by Björn Collinder in 1965.[81][82]
Uralic skepticism
The linguist Angela Marcantonio has argued against the validity of several subgroups of the Uralic family, as well against the family itself, claiming that many of the languages are no more closely related to each other than they are to various other Eurasian languages (e.g. Yukaghir or Turkic), and that in particular Hungarian is a language isolate.[83]
Marcantonio's proposal has been strongly dismissed by most reviewers as unfounded and methodologically flawed.[84][85][86][87][88][89] Problems identified by reviewers include:
- Misrepresentation of the amount of comparative evidence behind the Uralic family, by arbitrarily ignoring data and mis-counting the number of examples known of various regular sound correspondences[84][86][87][88][89]
- After arguing against the proposal of a Ugric subgroup within Uralic, claiming that this would constitute evidence that Hungarian and the Ob-Ugric languages have no relationship at all[84][85][86][89]
- Excessive focus on criticizing the work of early pioneer studies on the Uralic family, while ignoring newer, more detailed work published in the 20th century[85][87][88][89]
- Criticizing the evidence for the Uralic family as unsystematic and statistically insignificant, yet freely proposing alternate relationships based on even scarcer and even less systematic evidence.[84][86][87][88][89]
Other comparisons
Various unorthodox comparisons have been advanced. These are considered at best spurious fringe-theories by specialists:
- Finno-Basque[90]
- Hungarian-Etruscan[91]
- Sino-Uralic languages
- Cal-Ugrian theory
- Dené-Finnish (Sino-Tibetan, Na-Dené and Uralic)[92]
- Minoan-Uralic[93]
- Alternative theories of Hungarian language origins
Comparison
Article 1 of the Universal Declaration of Human Rights (in English): All human beings are born free and equal in dignity and rights. They are endowed with reason and conscience and should act towards one another in a spirit of brotherhood.
Comparison of the text in prominent Uralic languages:[94][95]
Kaikki ihmiset syntyvät vapaina ja tasavertaisina arvoltaan ja oikeuksiltaan. Heille on annettu järki ja omatunto, ja heidän on toimittava toisiaan kohtaan veljeyden hengessä.
Kai rahvas roittahes vällinny da taza-arvozinnu omas arvos da oigevuksis. Jogahizele heis on annettu mieli da omatundo da heil vältämättäh pidäy olla keskenäh, kui vellil.
Veps:
Kaik mehed sünduba joudajin i kohtaižin, ühtejiččin ičeze arvokahudes i oiktusiš. Heile om anttud mel’ i huiktusentund i heile tariž kožuda toine toiženke kut vel’l’kundad.
Kõik inimesed sünnivad vabadena ja võrdsetena oma väärikuselt ja õigustelt. Neile on antud mõistus ja südametunnistus ja nende suhtumist üksteisesse peab kandma vendluse vaim.
Amād rovzt attõ sindõnd brīd ja īdlizt eņtš vǟrtitõks ja õigiztõks. Näntõn um andtõd mūoštõks ja sidāmtundimi, ja näntõn um īdtuoisõ tuoimõmõst veļkub vaimsõ.
Buot olbmot leat riegádan friddjan ja olmmošárvvu ja olmmošvuoigatvuođaid dáfus. Sii leat jierbmalaš olbmot geain lea oamedovdu ja sii gálggaše leat dego vieljačagat.
Komi:
Bydös otirys čužöny vol’nöjеzön da ötkoddеzön dostoinstvoyn da pravoèzyn. Nylö sеtöm myvkyd da sovеst’ ovny ötamödnysköt kydz vonnèzlö.
Et xibjari nenėc’ sojamarianta xurkari pravada tnjava, ṇoboj nenėcja nidu nic’ tokalba, ṇybtamba ilevatu tara.
Minden emberi lény szabadon születik és egyenlő méltósága és joga van. Az emberek, ésszel és lelkiismerettel bírván, egymással szemben testvéri szellemben kell hogy viseltessenek.
See also
Notes
bibliography of articles supporting and opposing the hypothesis
References
- Abondolo, Daniel M. (editor). 1998. The Uralic Languages. London and New York: Routledge. ISBN 0-415-08198-X.
- Aikio, Ante (24 March 2022). "Chapter 1: Proto-Uralic". In Bakró-Nagy, Marianne; Laakso, Johanna; Skribnik, Elena (eds.). The Oxford Guide to the Uralic Languages. Oxford University Press. ISBN 9780198767664.
- Collinder, Björn. 1955. Fenno-Ugric Vocabulary: An Etymological Dictionary of the Uralic Languages. (Collective work.) Stockholm: Almqvist & Viksell. (Second, revised edition: Hamburg: Helmut Buske Verlag, 1977.)
- Collinder, Björn. 1957. Survey of the Uralic Languages. Stockholm.
- Collinder, Björn. 1960. Comparative Grammar of the Uralic Languages. Stockholm: Almqvist & Wiksell
- Comrie, Bernhard. 1988. "General Features of the Uralic Languages." In The Uralic Languages, edited by Denis Sinor, pp. 451–477. Leiden: Brill.
- Décsy, Gyula. 1990. The Uralic Protolanguage: A Comprehensive Reconstruction. Bloomington, Indiana.
- Hajdu, Péter. 1963. Finnugor népek és nyelvek. Budapest: Gondolat kiadó.
- Helimski, Eugene. Comparative Linguistics, Uralic Studies. Lectures and Articles. Moscow. 2000. (Russian: Хелимский Е.А. Компаративистика, уралистика. Лекции и статьи. М., 2000.)
- Laakso, Johanna. 1992. Uralilaiset kansat ('Uralic Peoples'). Porvoo – Helsinki – Juva. ISBN 951-0-16485-2.
- Korhonen, Mikko (1986). Finno-Ugrian Language Studies in Finland 1828–1918. Helsinki: Societas Scientiarum Fennica. ISBN 951-653-135-0..
- Napolskikh, Vladimir. The First Stages of Origin of People of Uralic Language Family: Material of Mythological Reconstruction. Moscow, 1991. (Russian: Напольских В. В. Древнейшие этапы происхождения народов уральской языковой семьи: данные мифологической реконструкции. М., 1991.)
- Rédei, Károly (editor). 1986–88. Uralisches etymologisches Wörterbuch ('Uralic Etymological Dictionary'). Budapest.
- Wickman, Bo (1988). "The History of Uralic Linguistics". In Sinor, Denis (ed.). The Uralic Languages: Description, History, and Foreign Influences. Leiden: Brill. pp. 792–818. ISBN 978-90-04-07741-6. OCLC 16580570.
External classification
- Sauvageot, Aurélien. 1930. Recherches sur le vocabulaire des langues ouralo-altaïques ('Research on the Vocabulary of the Uralo-Altaic Languages'). Paris.
Linguistic issues
- Künnap, A. 2000. Contact-induced Perspectives in Uralic Linguistics. LINCOM Studies in Asian Linguistics 39. München: LINCOM Europa. ISBN 3-89586-964-3.
- Wickman, Bo. 1955. The Form of the Object in the Uralic Languages. Uppsala: Lundequistska bokhandeln.
Further reading
- Bakró-Nagy, Marianne. "The Uralic Languages". In: Revue belge de philologie et d'histoire, tome 90, fasc. 3, 2012. Langues et littératures modernes. Moderne taal en letterkunde. pp. 1001–1027. DOI: The Uralic Languages; www.persee.fr/doc/rbph_0035-0818_2012_num_90_3_8272
- Kallio, Petri (2015). "The Language Contact Situation in Prehistoric Northeastern Europe". The Linguistic Roots of Europe: Origin and Development of European Languages. Copenhagen Studies in Indo-European 6. Copenhagen: Museum Tusculanum Press, 2015. pp. 77-102.
External links
- "The Finno-Ugrics" The Economist, December 20, 2005
- Kulonen, Ulla-Maija: Origin of Finnish and related languages. thisisFINLAND, Finland Promotion Board. Cited 30.10.2009.
- "Early Indo-Iranic loans in Uralic: Sounds and strata" (PDF). Martin Joachim Kümmel, Seminar for Indo-European Studies.
- Syrjänen, Kaj, Lehtinen, Jyri, Vesakoski, Outi, de Heer, Mervi, Suutari, Toni, Dunn, Michael, … Leino, Unni-Päivä. (2018). lexibank/uralex: UraLex basic vocabulary dataset (Version v1.0) [Data set]. Zenodo. doi:10.5281/zenodo.1459402
"Rebel" Uralists
- "The 'Ugric-Turkic battle': a critical review" by Angela Marcantonio, Pirjo Nummenaho, and Michela Salvagni
- "Linguistic shadow-boxing" by Johanna Laakso – a book review of Angela Marcantonio's The Uralic Language Family: Facts, Myths and Statistics
Notes
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Uralic_languages#Classification
The Onoghurs or Onoğurs or Oğurs (Ὀνόγουροι, Οὔρωγοι, Οὔγωροι; Onογurs, Ογurs; "ten tribes", "tribes"), were Turkic nomadic equestrians who flourished in the Pontic–Caspian steppe and the Volga region between 5th and 7th century, and spoke the Oghuric language.[1]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Onogurs
Khanty-Mansi Autonomous Okrug–Yugra | |
---|---|
Ханты-Мансийский автономный округ — Югра | |
Other transcription(s) | |
• Khanty | Хӑнты-Мансийской Aвтономной Округ |
• Mansi | Ханты-Мансийский Aвтономный Oкруг |
Anthem: Anthem of Khanty-Mansi Autonomous Okrug | |
Coordinates: 62°15′N 70°10′ECoordinates: 62°15′N 70°10′E | |
Country | Russia |
Federal district | Urals[1] |
Economic region | West Siberian[2] |
Administrative center | Khanty-Mansiysk |
Government | |
• Body | Duma |
• Governor | Natalya Komarova[3] |
Area | |
• Total | 534,800 km2 (206,500 sq mi) |
• Rank | 9th |
Population (2010 Census)[5] | |
• Total | 1,532,243 |
• Rank | 29th |
• Density | 2.9/km2 (7.4/sq mi) |
• Urban | 91.5% |
• Rural | 8.5% |
Time zone | UTC+5 (MSK+2 [6]) |
ISO 3166 code | RU-KHM |
License plates | 86, 186 |
OKTMO ID | 71800000 |
Official languages | Russian[7] |
Recognised languages | Khanty • Mansi[citation needed] |
Website | http://www.admhmao.ru/ |
Khanty-Mansi Autonomous Okrug–Yugra (Russian and Mansi: Ханты-Мансийский автономный округ — Югра, Khanty-Mansiysky avtonomny okrug — Yugra; Khanty: Хӑнты-Мансийской Aвтономной Округ) or Khantia-Mansia is a federal subject of Russia (an autonomous okrug of Tyumen Oblast). It has a population of 1,532,243 as of the 2010 Census.[5]
The peoples native to the region are the Khanty and the Mansi, known collectively as Ob-Ugric people, but today the two groups only constitute 2.5% of the region's population. The local languages, Khanty and Mansi, enjoy special status in the autonomous okrug and along with their distant relative Hungarian are part of the Ugric branch of the Finno-Ugric languages. Russian remains the only official language.
In 2012, the majority (51%)[8] of the oil produced in Russia came from Khanty-Mansi Autonomous Okrug, giving the region great economic importance in Russia and the world. It borders Yamalo-Nenets Autonomous Okrug to the north, Komi Republic to the northwest, Sverdlovsk Oblast to the west, Tyumen Oblast to the south, Tomsk Oblast to the south and southeast and Krasnoyarsk Krai in the east.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khanty-Mansi_Autonomous_Okrug
Sviatoslav the Brave | |
---|---|
Grand Prince of Kiev | |
Reign | 945–972 |
Coronation | 964 |
Predecessor | Olga of Kiev |
Successor | Yaropolk I |
Born | March 943 Kiev, Kievan Rus' |
Died | 26 March 972 (aged 28-29) The island of Khortytsia, Dnieper |
Wives | |
Issue | Yaropolk I Oleg Vladimir the Great Sfengus (possibly) |
Dynasty | Rurikid |
Father | Igor of Kiev |
Mother | Olga of Kiev (regent 945–964) |
Religion | Slavic paganism |
Sviatoslav I Igorevich (Old East Slavic: Ст҃ославъ / Свѧтославъ Игорєвичь, romanized: Svętoslavŭ Igorevičǐ;[1] Old Norse: Sveinald; Russian: Святослав Игоревич; Ukrainian: Святослав Ігорович, romanized: Sviatoslav Ihorovych; Belarusian: Святаслаў Ігаравіч; 943 – 26 March 972), also spelled Svyatoslav, was Grand Prince of Kiev[2][3] famous for his persistent campaigns in the east and south, which precipitated the collapse of two great powers of Eastern Europe, Khazaria and the First Bulgarian Empire. He conquered numerous East Slavic tribes, defeated the Alans and attacked the Volga Bulgars,[4][5] and at times was allied with the Pechenegs and Magyars (Hungarians).
His decade-long reign over the Kievan Rus' was marked by rapid expansion into the Volga River valley, the Pontic steppe, and the Balkans. By the end of his short life, Sviatoslav carved out for himself the largest state in Europe, eventually moving his capital in 969 from Kiev (modern-day Ukraine) to Pereyaslavets (identified as the modern village of Nufăru, Romania)[6] on the Danube.
In contrast with his mother's conversion to Christianity, Sviatoslav remained a staunch pagan all of his life. Due to his abrupt death in an ambush, his conquests, for the most part, were not consolidated into a functioning empire, while his failure to establish a stable succession led to a fratricidal feud among his three sons, resulting in two of them being killed.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Sviatoslav_I
UNESCO World Heritage Site | |
---|---|
Official name | Bolgar Historical and Archaeological Complex |
Location | Tatarstan, Russia |
Criteria | Cultural: (ii), (vi) |
Reference | 981rev |
Inscription | 2014 (38th Session) |
Area | 424 ha (1.64 sq mi) |
Buffer zone | 12,101 ha (46.72 sq mi) |
Coordinates | 54°58′44″N 49°03′23″ECoordinates: 54°58′44″N 49°03′23″E |
Bolghar (Tatar: Болгар, Chuvash: Пăлхар) was intermittently the capital of Volga Bulgaria from the 10th to the 13th centuries, along with Bilyar and Nur-Suvar. It was situated on the bank of the Volga River, about 30 km downstream from its confluence with the Kama River and some 130 km from modern Kazan in what is now Spassky District. West of it lies a small modern town, since 1991 known as Bolgar. The UNESCO World Heritage Committee inscribed Bolgar Historical and Archaeological Complex (ancient Bolghar hill fort) to the World Heritage List in 2014.[1]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Bolghar
Vsevolod III Yuryevich | |
---|---|
Born | 19 October 1154 |
Died | 15 April 1212 (aged 57) |
Spouse | Maria Shvarnovna Liubov Vasilkovna |
Issue more... | Konstantin of Rostov Yuri II of Vladimir Yaroslav II of Vladimir Sviatoslav III of Vladimir |
House | Yurievichi |
Father | Yuri Dolgoruky |
Mother | Helene |
Vsevolod III Yuryevich, or Vsevolod the Big Nest (Russian: Все́волод III Ю́рьевич Большо́е Гнездо́, tr. Vsévolod III Yúr'yevich Bol'shóye Gnezdó) (1154–1212), was Grand Prince of Vladimir from 1176 to 1212. During his long reign, the city reached the zenith of its glory.[citation needed]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Vsevolod_the_Big_Nest
Tbilisi
თბილისი | |
---|---|
Top to bottom: View of Tbilisi from the right bank of the Kura River, Monument of St. George on Freedom Square, View of the Narikala Fortress from the left bank of Kura | |
Coordinates: 41°43′21″N 44°47′33″ECoordinates: 41°43′21″N 44°47′33″E | |
Country | Georgia |
---|---|
Established | AD 455[2] |
Government | |
• Type | Mayor–Council |
• Body | Tbilisi Sakrebulo |
• Mayor | Kakha Kaladze (GD)[3] |
Area | |
• Capital city | 504.2 km2 (194.7 sq mi) |
• Metro | 726 km2 (280 sq mi) |
Highest elevation | 770 m (2,530 ft) |
Lowest elevation | 380 m (1,250 ft) |
Population (2021) | |
• Capital city | 1,202,731[1] |
• Density | 3,194.38/km2 (8,273.4/sq mi) |
• Metro | 1,485,293 |
Demonym(s) | Tbilisian Tbiliseli (In Georgian) |
Population by ethnicity[5] | |
• Georgians | 89.9 % |
• Armenians | 4.8 % |
• Azerbaijanis | 1.4 % |
• Russians | 1.2 % |
• Yazidis | 1.0 % |
• Others | 1.7 % |
Time zone | UTC+4 (Georgian Time) |
Area code | +995 32 |
Gross regional product[6] | 2020 |
– Total | GEL24.9bil. ($8B) |
– Per capita | $6,700 |
HDI (2021) | 0.824[7] – very high |
Website | tbilisi.gov.ge |
Tbilisi (English: /təbɪˈliːsi, təˈbɪlɪsi/ tə-bil-EE-see, tə-BIL-iss-ee;[8] Georgian: თბილისი Georgian pronunciation: [tʰbilisi]), in some languages still known by its pre-1936 name Tiflis[a] (/ˈtɪflɪs/ TIF-liss),[8] is the capital and the largest city of Georgia, lying on the banks of the Kura River with a population around 1.5 million people. Tbilisi was founded in the fifth century AD by Vakhtang I of Iberia, and since then has served as the capital of various Georgian kingdoms and republics. Between 1801 and 1917, then part of the Russian Empire, Tiflis was the seat of the Caucasus Viceroyalty, governing both the northern and the southern parts of the Caucasus.
Because of its location on the crossroads between Europe and Asia, and its proximity to the lucrative Silk Road, throughout history, Tbilisi was a point of contention among various global powers. To this day the city's location ensures its position as an important transit route for energy and trade projects. Tbilisi's history is reflected in its architecture, which is a mix of medieval, neoclassical, Beaux Arts, Art Nouveau, Stalinist, and Modern structures.
Historically, Tbilisi has been home to people of multiple cultural, ethnic, and religious backgrounds, though it is overwhelmingly Eastern Orthodox Christian. Its notable tourist destinations include cathedrals Sameba and Sioni, Freedom Square, Rustaveli Avenue and Agmashenebeli Avenue, medieval Narikala Fortress, the pseudo-Moorish Opera Theater, and the Georgian National Museum. The climate in Tbilisi mostly ranges from 20 to 32 °C (68 to 90 °F) in the summer and −1 to 7 °C (30 to 45 °F) in the winter.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Tbilisi
Islam | |
---|---|
الاسلام al-’Islām | |
Type | Universal religion |
Classification | Abrahamic |
Scripture | Quran |
Theology | Monotheism |
Language | Classical Arabic |
Territory | Muslim world |
Founder | Muhammad |
Origin | 7th century CE Jabal al-Nour, near Mecca, Hejaz, Arabia |
Separated from | Arabian polytheism |
Separations | Ahl-e Haqq,[1] Bábism,[2] Baháʼí Faith,[3] Din-i Ilahi, Druzism,[4][5] Ahmadiyya |
Number of followers | c. 1.9 billion[6] (referred to as Muslims, who are collectively called the ummah) |
Part of a series on |
Islam |
---|
Islam (/ˈɪslɑːm/; Arabic: ۘالِإسلَام, al-ʾIslām [ɪsˈlaːm] (listen), transl. "Submission [to God]")[7][8] is an Abrahamic monotheistic religion centered on the Quran and the teachings of Muhammad.[9][10] Adherents of Islam, called Muslims,[11] number approximately 1.9 billion globally and are the world's second-largest religious population after Christians.[6][12][13][14]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Islam
Modern cities Kazan and Yelabuga were founded as Volga Bulgaria's border fortresses. Some of the Volga Bulgarian cities have still not been found, but they are mentioned in old East Slavic sources. They are: Ashli (Oshel), Tuxçin (Tukhchin), İbrahim (Bryakhimov), Taw İle. Some of them were ruined during and after the Golden Horde invasion.[citation needed]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Volga_Bulgaria
In September 1223 near Samara an advance guard of Genghis Khan's army under command of Uran, son of Subutai Bahadur,[disputed ] entered Volga Bulgaria but was defeated in the Battle of Samara Bend.[citation needed] In 1236, the Mongols returned and in five years had subjugated the whole country, which at that time was suffering from internal war[citation needed]. Henceforth Volga Bulgaria became a part of the Ulus Jochi, later known as the Golden Horde. It was divided into several principalities; each of them became a vassal of the Golden Horde and received some autonomy. By the 1430s, the Khanate of Kazan was established as the most important of these principalities.[citation needed]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Volga_Bulgaria
Ulugh Muhammad | |
---|---|
Khan of the Golden Horde (1st reign) | |
Reign | 1419 – 1423 |
Predecessor | Hajji Muhammad Khan ibn Oghlan Ali |
Successor | Barak Khan |
Khan of the Golden Horde (2nd reign) | |
Reign | 1428 – 1437 |
Predecessor | Barak Khan |
Successor | Sayid Ahmad I |
Khan of the Tatar Kazan Khanate | |
Reign | 1438 – 1445 |
Predecessor | none |
Successor | Mäxmüd of Kazan |
Born | 1405 |
Died | 1445 Kazan |
Dynasty | Borjigin |
Father | Ichkile Hassan |
Religion | Sunni Islam |
Ulugh Muhammad (1405–1445; الغ محمد; Tatar: Олуг Мөхәммәт, romanized: Oluğ Möxəmmət; written as Ulanus by orientalists) was a medieval Tatar statesman, Gengisid, Khan of the Golden Horde (before 1436), ruler of Crimea (1437), and the founder of the Khanate of Kazan, which he ruled from 1438–1445. He was the son of the oglan Ichkile Hassan and the cousin of Tokhtamysh. He received the nickname "Ulugh", meaning older or large, in contrast to another Muhammed who was called "Kichi", meaning younger or small.
Ulugh Muhammad was Khan of the Golden Horde in 1419–1423, 1426, 1428. In 1428–1432 he waged a stubborn struggle for possession of the Ulug Ulus with the representatives of a minor branch of the Tukaytimurids (one of the branches of the Gengisids). After being defeated, Ulugh Muhammad escaped to Volga Bulgaria vilayet in 1423. With the support Vytautas, Ulugh Muhammad was able to regain the throne of the Golden Horde in 1426. He succeeded in spreading the power of the Horde to Crimea and established friendly relations with the Ottoman Sultan Murad II. Ulugh Muhammad sent an embassy to Egypt in 1428–1429. In 1431 the son and grandson of the ruler of Moscow, Dmitriy Donskoy came to the court to Ulugh Muhammad in order to reach a decision about princely succession. Ulugh Muhammad ruled in favour of the grandson, Vasiliy II .
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ulugh_Muhammad
List of Kazan khans
List of Kazan khans who ruled the Khanate of Kazan before it was conquered by Russia. The First List has local spelling and dynasty. The Second List has very short biographies.
First List
- Ghiyath-ud-din Khan taking advantage of the troubles of the Golden Horde established himself as an independent ruler of Kazan Ulus (Kazan district) during the 1420s. Eventually the former ruler of the Golden Horde, Ulugh Muhammad, would take over Kazan and establish his own separate Khanate of Kazan breaking the Golden Horde Empire.
- Blue rows signify influence of Grand Duchy of Moscow.
- Green row signifies brief interruption under Khan of Sibir Khanate.
- Pink rows signify Qasim Khanate rule.
- Yellow rows signify Giray dynasty from Crimean Khanate.
- Brown row signifies prince from Khanate of Astrakhan rule.
- Yellow rows signify Giray dynasty from Crimean Khanate.
- Pink rows signify Qasim Khanate rule.
- Green row signifies brief interruption under Khan of Sibir Khanate.
Titular Name | Personal Name | Reign |
---|---|---|
Khan خان |
Ulugh Muhammad الغ محمد |
1438 - 1446 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Mäxmüd of Kazan محمود ابن الغ محمد |
1445 – 1466 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Xälil of Kazan خلیل ابن محمود |
1466 – 1467 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Ibrahim of Kazan ابراہیم ابن محمود |
1467 – 1479 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Ilham Ghali of Kazan علی ابن ابراہیم |
1479 – 1484 C.E. (1st reign) |
Khan خان |
Möxämmädämin of Kazan محمد امین ابن ابراہیم |
1484 – 1485 C.E. (1st reign) |
Khan خان |
Ilham Ghali of Kazan علی ابن ابراہیم |
1485 – 1487 C.E. (2nd reign) |
Khan خان |
Möxämmädämin of Kazan محمد امین ابن ابراہیم |
1487 – 1495 C.E. (2nd reign) |
Khan خان |
Mamuq of Kazan ? |
1495 – 1496 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Ghabdellatif of Kazan عبد اللطیف ابن ابراہیم |
1496 – 1502 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Möxämmädämin of Kazan محمد امین ابن ابراہیم |
1502 - 1518 C.E. (3rd reign) |
Khan خان |
Shahghali شاہ علی ابن شیخ اللہ یار |
1518 - 1521 C.E. (1st reign) |
Khan خان |
Sahib I Giray صاحب غرائی |
1521 - 1525 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Safa Giray of Kazan صفا غرائی |
1525 - 1532 C.E. (1st reign) |
Khan خان |
Canghali of Kazan جان علی ابن شیخ اللہ یار |
1532 – 1535 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Safa Giray of Kazan صفا غرائی |
1535 – 1546 C.E. (2nd reign) |
Khan خان |
Shahghali شاہ علی ابن شیخ اللہ یار |
1546 C.E. (2nd reign) |
Khan خان |
Safa Giray of Kazan صفا غرائی |
1546 - 1549 C.E. (3rd reign) |
Khan خان |
Devlet I Giray دولت كراى Pretender, appointed by the Ottoman Empire |
1549 – 1551 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Utameshgaray of Kazan عتمش غرائی Utemish being a minor the actual ruler was his mother Söyembikä who acted as regent |
1549 – 1551 C.E. |
Khan خان |
Shahghali شاہ علی ابن شیخ اللہ یار |
1551 – 1552 C.E. (3rd reign) |
Khan خان |
Yadegar Mokhammad of Kazan یاد گار محمد |
1552 C.E. |
Ivan the Terrible, the Tsar of Russia conquers Khanate of Kazan in 1552 C.E. |
Second List with short biographies
This information comes from Howorth's 1880 book [1] and is checked against the Russian Wikipedia. There appears to be no modern book in English on the history of the khanate. Abbreviations on khan-numbers: R=pro-Russian, A=anti-Russian.
- 0. Before the Khanate the area had been part of Volga Bulgaria and then the Bulgar Ulus of the Golden Horde.
- 1A. Ulugh Muhammad 1438-1456 was twice Khan of the Golden Horde. Driven out in 1436, fled to Crimea, quarreled with the Crimeans, led a 3000-man army north and took the border town of Belyov. In 1437 Vasily II sent 40000 men against him, who were defeated. In the same year he moved to the Volga and in 1438 captured Kazan and separated it from the Golden horde. 1439 took Nizhny Novgorod and burned outskirts of Moscow. In 1444-45 he occupied Nizhny Novgorod and marched on Murom and raided Ryazan. When Vasily counterattacked (1445) he was defeated and captured at the Battle of Suzdal, but soon ransomed. Muhammad died in the fall of 1445, possibly murdered by his son Mamudek, below. His son Qasim Khan went to collect ransom after the battle of Suzdal, entered Russian service and in 1452 founded the Qasim Khanate.
- 2. Mäxmüd of Kazan or Mamudek 1445-66 son of above. Long and peaceful reign in which the Khanate was stabilized and enriched. Howorth has him kill an Ali Beg who had usurped power. 1444 raided Veliky Ustug far to the northwest. Commander at battle of Suzdal, above. 1448 Russians drove his army out of Vladmir and Murom.
- 3. Xälil of Kazan 1466-67 son of above, short reign, little information.
- 4A. Ibrahim of Kazan 1467-79 brother of above. Married his brother's widow (#X below). When he came to the throne Russia and a local faction tried to impose his uncle Qasim Khan, above. After several failures in 1469 the Russians surrounded Kazan and cut off its water supply. Peace was made and Kazan released a large number of captives. In 1478 Ibrahim raided Russia. Next year Ivan reached Kazan and withdrew. Ibrahim died soon after.
- 5A. Ilham 1479–84, 1485-87 Son of above by first wife. 1482 Russian war plan stopped by treaty. 1484 Russia imposed #6, 1485 Ilham restored by local faction with Russian support. 1487 deposed after Russian siege, exiled to Vologda.
- 6R. 1st and 2nd Muhammed Amin 1484–85, 1487–95. Son of #4 and #X, half-brother of #5. 1st reign: 1484 at about age 15 enthroned by Russians replacing Ilham, next year replaced by Ilham. 2nd reign: 1487 restored by Russia. 1491 Kazan, Moscow, Crimea and Nogais fought the Great Horde. 1495 replaced by #7, fled to Russia and given fief, fought Lithuania. 3rd reign: see #9
- 7. Mamuk 1495-96 was khan of Sibir (probably), invited in by a faction, Russia sent army to protect #6, Mamuk driven off by another faction, when Russian army left he took Kazan with Nogai support. Unpopular, after returning from a raid on Arsk the city gates were closed to him and he went back to Sibir, dying en route.
- 8R. Abdul Latif or Ghabdellatif of Kazan 1497-1502 brother of #6, son of #4 and #X. 1479 went to Crimea with his mother, 1490 fief in Russia. 1496 Kazan asked for him instead of #6. 1499 Agalak(#7's brother) and Uraq failed to take Kazan. Grew unpopular, 1502 faction and Russia replaced him with #6, exiled to Beloozersk, 1516 released, 1517 died.
- 9RA. 3rd Muhammed Amin 1502–18. See #6 for first and second reigns. Married widow of #5. In 1505, incited by his wife, he robbed, killed or captured the Russian merchants in his domain and sent his troops and Nogais to burn the suburbs of Nizhny Novgorod, which was saved by 300 released Lithuanian POWs. Nogais split with Kazan and the siege was raised. During the Russo-Kazan War (1505-07) two armies went to Kazan. One went down the Volga and was defeated near Kazan. A second army arrived from a different direction, almost won, fell to looting and was destroyed. The matter was settled and Kazan gave up its prisoners. 1510 #X went to Moscow and Kazan and arranged some degree of peace.
- 10R. 1st Shah Ali 1518-21 The house of #1 having died out, Crimea wanted #11, but Russia imposed the Kasim khan Shah Ali. He is described as fat and physically repulsive and unpopular as a Russian puppet. #11 was invited and took over with no trouble and #10 returned to Russia.
- 11A. Sahib I Giray 1521-25 younger brother of Crimean khan Mehmed I Giray. 1510 accompanied his step-mother #X to Moscow. His 1521 accession meant war with Russia, so that year Kazan and Crimea raided Muscovy and took a huge number of prisoners. 1522 raided eastern Muscovy. 1523 Russian army under #10 reached Kazan but turned back and Kazan failed to take Galich. 1524 lost Crimean support for uncertain reasons, declared himself a Turkish vassal without result and at the approach of a huge Russian army, fled. Later became Khan of Crimea (1532–51).
- 12A 1st Safa Giray of Kazan 1525-32: Their khan having fled, the patriotic faction placed his 13-year-old nephew on the throne. The Russian siege was unsuccessful and they withdrew. In 1530 another Russian army was sent and burned much of Kazan, besieged what was left and then made a truce. A Kazan faction replaced him with #13.
- 13R. Jan Ali 1532-35 Seeking a pro-Russian khan and fearing #10 they chose his brother who was then the Qasim Khan. Recognized Russian suzerainty and dominated by a faction under #Z below, 1533 married Suyumbeke #Y (below), deposed and either killed or exiled to Old Kazan (sources differ). During his reign the future conquer of Kazan, Ivan the Terrible, came to the throne at the age of three.
- 14A. 2nd Safa Giray 1536-46 see #12. Recalled from Crimea, married #Y, a faction wanted #10, after failed Russian attack, Tatars plundered Nizhny Novgorod region. 1538 raided Muscovy, withdrew and made peace acknowledging Russian suzerainty. 1540 raided Murom with Crimeans and Nogais, 1546 Russians raided near Kazan and withdrew, same year deposed by faction.,
- 15R. 2nd Shah Ali 1546 see #10, installed by pro-Russian faction, saw that the other faction was more powerful and began to fear for his life. The story goes that he held a banquet, got everyone drunk and slipped out of the palace before anyone knew he was gone.
- 16A. 3rd Safa Giray 1546-49 see #12, #14. Had fled to his Nogai father-in-law Yusuf, returned with a Nogai army, but Shah Ali's flight made the army unnecessary. Leaders of Russian faction fled to Russia, minor Russian raid. 1547 Ivan the Terrible in person led army east, but unusual warm winter made roads and rivers impassible, so army withdrew. According to one story he died by falling against a pillar when drunk.
- 17A. Utamesh Giray of Kazan 1549-51 son of #16 and Suyunbeka (#Y below). Enthroned at age 2 with his mother as regent. In 1549 Ivan the Terrible sent an army planning to reinstall #15, Kazan was surrounded, an assault failed and a thaw made the roads impassible and forced withdrawal. They withdrew 29 kilometres (18 mi) west and built a fort at Sviyazhsk. A faction sought peace and delivered Utamesh and his mother to the Russians. Utamesh was baptized, fought the Lithuanians and died at the age of 20. His mother was then married to Shah Ali #15.
- 18R. 3rd Shah Ali 1551-52 see #15. The pro-Russian Shah Ali was placed on the throne and 60000 Russian captives released. Russia annexed land west of the Volga, which weakened the khanate and was opposed by even Shah Ali. He killed many of his enemies at a banquet, which made things worse. Ivan wanted him deposed and he fled the town for a third time.
- 19A. Yadegar Mokhammad of Kazan 1552. 1552 patriotic faction closed gates to Russians, called in Yadigar. For the Russian conquest see Siege of Kazan. Yadigar was the son of Qasim II of Astrakhan, 1542 in Russian service, 1550/51 fought Kazan, then joined Nogais, 1552 called to Kazan, survived the defeat, 1553 baptized, given Zvenigorod, fought in Livonian War, died in 1565.
- 20A?. Ali Akram c1552-56. The rebels who continued to resist in the countryside brought in a Nogai named Ali Akram. He was unsuccessful and was killed by the rebels.
- X. Nur-Sultan (ru:Нур-Султан): daughter of Timur, a Nogai beg, wife of #3, second wife of #4, at his death went to Crimea, 1486 married Crimean Khan Meñli I Giray. 1494-95 made Hajj, 1510-11 visited Moscow and Kazan, helped with treaty. #6 and #8 were her sons, #11 her stepson and #Z her daughter.
- Y. Söyembikä of Kazan daughter of Nogai beg Yosuf, 1533 at age 12 married to Jan Ali #13, circa 1536 became fifth wife of Safa Giray #14 who had deposed #13, 1549 after #14's death regent for his 2-year-old son #17, 1551 faction gave her and her son to Russians, year and a half later married against her will to #18, apparently after he had been expelled from Kazan, died in Kasimov.
- Z. Gaukharshad (ru:Гаухаршад) daughter of Ibraham #4 and #X, sister of #6 and #8. Involved in 1532 coup against Safa Giray #12 and became regent for Jan Ali #13 who married #Y. After #13 lost power in 1535 active in politics for another 10 years.
notes
- Henry Howorth, History of the Mongols,1880, part 2, pp 363-429
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/List_of_Kazan_khans
The family tree of Genghis Khan is listed below. This family tree only lists prominent members of the Borjigin family and does not reach the present. Genghis Khan appears in the middle of the tree, and Kublai Khan appears at the bottom of the tree. The Borjigin family was the imperial house of the Mongol Empire (and its various successor states, dating back to the 13th and 14th centuries.
Descent from Genghis Khan in East Asia is well-documented by Chinese sources. His descent in West Asia and Europe was documented through the 14th century, in texts written by Rashid-al-Din Hamadani and other Muslim historians. With the advent of genealogical DNA testing, a larger and broader circle of people have begun to claim descent from Genghis Khan.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Family_and_descendants_of_Genghis_Khan
Throughout its history, the khanate was prone to civil turmoil and struggles for the throne. The khans were replaced 19 times in 115 years. There were a total of fifteen reigning khans, some ascending the throne multiple times. The Khan was often elected from the Gengizides by vernacular nobility and even by the citizens themselves.
Regarding the history of the khanate, there is a scarcity of sources. Not only no single document of the khanate survived the Russian conquest, but even the documents of early Russian colonial administration (Prikaz Kazanskogo Dvortsa) were all destroyed during the Time of Troubles.[2]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khanate_of_Kazan
Möxämmädämin | |
---|---|
Khan of the Tatar Kazan Khanate (1st reign) | |
Reign | 1484 – 1485 |
Predecessor | Ilham Ghali of Kazan |
Successor | Ilham Ghali of Kazan |
Khan of the Tatar Kazan Khanate (2nd reign) | |
Reign | 1487 – 1495 |
Predecessor | Ilham Ghali of Kazan |
Successor | Mamuq of Kazan |
Khan of the Tatar Kazan Khanate (3rd reign) | |
Reign | 1502 – 1518 |
Predecessor | Ghabdellatif of Kazan |
Successor | Shahghali |
Born | c. 1469 |
Died | 1518 |
Spouse | Nur Sultan |
Möxämmät Ämin or Möxammädämin (Tatar: Мөхәммәдәмин, Мөхәммәт Әмин, [mœxæmˌmædæˈmin]; also spelled Muhammad Amin or Emin[1] via Russian: Мухаммед-Амин) (c. 1469 – 1518) was three times a pro-Russian khan of Kazan.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/M%C3%B6x%C3%A4mm%C3%A4d%C3%A4min_of_Kazan
Part of the population continued to resist Russian rule until 1556. Rebel governments were formed in Chalem and Mishatamaq, but as the Nogays under Ğäli Äkräm often raided the agricultural population, the coalition went to ruin. After a brutal repression against the Kazan rebels, their commanders were executed.
By some estimates,[3] the population of the former khanate declined by several thousands during the wars. The administration, known as the Kazan Palace's Office undertook the forced Russification and Christianization of the Tatars and other peoples.[4] The term Tsardom of Kazan was in use until 1708 when the Kazan Governorate was formed.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khanate_of_Kazan
Ar begs (in Russian chronicles "Арские князья") was a formation of Noqrat Tatars' nobility, served to Muscovy in 16th–17th century. In 14th–15th centuries they were rulers of semi-independent duchy in the middle Cheptsa, nowadays Udmurtia. At the first time, their lands were under Kazan Khanate's and later under Russian influence. Begs also participated in wars for Udmurtia between Kazan and Muscovy.
Several Russian noble families descended from the Ar begs include the Devetyarov, Kasimov, Yaushev and others.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ar_begs
Khandoba | |
---|---|
Sanskrit transliteration | Khaṇḍobā |
Devanagari | खंडोबा |
Affiliation | Avatar of Shiva |
Abode | Jejuri |
Mantra | Om Shri Martanda Bhairavaya Namah |
Weapon | Trishula, Sword |
Mount | Horse |
Consort | Mhalsa and Banai (chief consorts); Rambhai, Phulai and Chandai |
Khandoba (IAST: Khaṇḍobā), Martanda Bhairava, Malhari, or Malhar is a Hindu deity worshiped as a manifestation of Shiva mainly in the Deccan plateau of India, especially in the state of Maharashtra. He is the most popular Kuladevata (family deity) in Maharashtra.[1] He is also the patron deity of select warrior, farming castes, Dhangar community and Brahmin (priestly) castes as well as several of the hunter/gatherer tribes (Bedar, Naik) that are native to the hills and forests of this region. The sect of Khandoba has linkages with Hindu and Jain traditions, and also assimilates all communities irrespective of caste, including Muslims. The character of Khandoba developed during the 9th and 10th centuries from a folk deity into a composite god possessing the attributes of Shiva, Bhairava, Surya and Kartikeya (Skanda). He is depicted either in the form of a linga, or as an image of a warrior riding on a bull or a horse. The foremost centre of Khandoba worship is the temple of Jejuri in Maharashtra. The legends of Khandoba, found in the text Malhari Mahatmya and also narrated in folk songs, revolve around his victory over demons Mani-malla and his marriages.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khandoba
Geography | |
---|---|
Location | 25 km (16 mi) south of Baku, Azerbaijan |
Coordinates | 40.24134°N 49.634242°ECoordinates: 40.24134°N 49.634242°E |
Archipelago | Baku Archipelago |
Total islands | 41 |
Area | 20 km2 (7.7 sq mi) |
Administration | |
Capital city | Baku |
The Khazar Islands (Azerbaijani: Xəzər adaları), also known as Caspian Islands,[1] is a stalled development of artificial islands 25 km (16 mi) south of Baku, Azerbaijan consisting of 41 islands extending 3,000 hectares (30 km2; 7,400 acres; 12 sq mi) into the Caspian Sea.[2][3][4][5]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khazar_Islands
List of artificial islands
Name | Country | Area (km2) | Population | Notes |
---|---|---|---|---|
René-Levasseur Island | Canada | 2,020 | 0 | Impact crater in Quebec isolated when two pre-existing natural lakes were connected by the formation of the Manicouagan Reservoir. |
Caofeidian | China | 60 |
|
|
Dongjiang Island | China | 33.5 |
|
Cargo transfer and wetland reconstruction.[1][better source needed] |
Jurong Island | Singapore | 32 | 0 | Formed by the amalgamation of seven natural islands |
Sanya Hongtangwan International Airport | China | 23.99 |
|
International Airport under construction. |
Dalian Jinzhouwan International Airport | China | 21 | 0 | International Airport under construction. |
Khazar Islands | Azerbaijan | 20 | 0 | Planned city |
Subi Reef | Disputed | 16 | 200 | Currently being converted into an island by China as part of the Great Wall of Sand.
Also claimed by Vietnam, the Philippines and Taiwan. |
Qianhai | China | 14.92 |
|
|
Hong Kong International Airport | Hong Kong | 12.48 |
|
Mostly on reclaimed land. Some of it is on the now merged Chek Lap Kok and Lam Chau islands. |
Diyar Al Muharraq | Bahrain | 12 | 0 |
|
Cuarteron Reef | Disputed | 8 | 0 | Currently being converted into an island by China as part of the Great Wall of Sand.
Also claimed by Vietnam, the Philippines and Taiwan. |
Macau New Urban Zones | Macau | 7.3 |
|
|
Northern City | Bahrain | 7 | 1,000 |
|
Mischief Reef | Disputed | 5.58 | 0 | Currently being converted into an island by China as part of the Great Wall of Sand.
Also claimed by Vietnam, the Philippines and Taiwan. |
Durrat Al Bahrain | Bahrain | 5 | 1,000 |
|
Amwaj Islands | Bahrain | 4.31 | 10,000 |
|
Ocean Flower Island | China | 3.81 |
|
|
Qingdao Oriental Movie Metropolis | China | 3.76 |
|
|
Pulau Semakau | Singapore | 3.5 | 0 |
|
Fiery Cross Reef | Disputed | 2.74 | 200 | Currently being converted into an island by China as part of the Great Wall of Sand.
Also claimed by Vietnam, the Philippines and Taiwan. |
Pulau Punggol Barat | Singapore | 1.92 | 0 |
|
Bahrain Bay | Bahrain | 1.35 | 100 |
|
Peberholm | Denmark | 1.3 |
|
|
Pulau Punggol Timor | Singapore | 1.12 | 0? |
|
King Fahd Passport Island | Bahrain | 0.88 | 10 | Shared island between Saudi Arabia and Bahrain. Also known as Middle Island, Embankment 4. |
Reef Island | Bahrain | 0.713 | 3,000 | Also known as Lulu Island. |
Ontario Place East and West Island | Canada | 0.6273 | 0 | Theme park in Ontario. |
Flakfortet | Denmark | 0.3 |
|
Copenhagen harbour |
Freedom Island | Philippines | 0.3 |
|
|
Heirisson Island | Australia | 0.2856 | 0 | Created from pre-existing smaller islands via reclamation. Swan River, Western Australia |
Île Notre-Dame | Canada | 0.25 | 0 | Located in Montreal |
Gaven Reefs | Disputed | 0.136 | 0 | Currently being converted into an island by China as part of the Great Wall of Sand.
Also claimed by Vietnam, the Philippines and Taiwan. |
Chinese Garden | Singapore | 0.135 | 0 |
|
Johnson South Reef | Disputed | 0.109 | 0 | Currently being converted into an island by China as part of the Great Wall of Sand.
Also claimed by Vietnam, the Philippines and Taiwan. |
Hughes Reef | Disputed | 0.076 | 0 | Currently being converted into an island by China as part of the Great Wall of Sand.
Also claimed by Vietnam, the Philippines and Taiwan. |
Middelgrundsfortet | Denmark | 0.07 |
|
Copenhagen harbour (also known as Middelgrunden) |
Pearl Island | Singapore | 0.019 | 0 |
|
Coral Island | Singapore | 0.017 | 0 |
|
Langlütjen II | Germany | 0.017 | 0 | Sold to a private owner. |
Langlütjen I | Germany | 0.016 | 0 | Sold. |
Île aux Cygnes | France | 0.013 | 0 |
|
Wilhelmstein | Germany | 0.0125 | 0 |
|
Sealand | United Kingdom (de jure) | 0.004 | 2 |
|
Sandy Island | Singapore | 0.0007 | 0 |
|
Queen Elizabeth II Island | Australia |
|
0 |
|
Bahrain Lagoon | Bahrain |
|
|
Future artificial planned island |
China Dafeng Port Economic Zone | China |
|
|
|
Dayang Port | China |
|
|
|
Donauinsel | Austria | 20 kilometres long and 200 meters wide in the Danube (Vienna) | 0 | In the Danube (Vienna) |
Dongjiakou Dock | China |
|
|
|
Fisherman's Island | Australia |
|
0 |
|
Fort Boyard | France |
|
250 | Fort |
Jizuishi Shipyard | China |
|
|
|
Lanqiao Port | China |
|
|
|
Le Havre Port | France |
|
|
|
Longxue Island Shipyard and Port | China |
|
|
|
Lvsi Harbour | China |
|
|
|
Maojia Port | China |
|
|
|
MOSE | Italy |
|
|
An artificial island was created in Lido inlet as part of the flood defenses for Venice |
Nigehörn | Germany |
|
0 |
|
Paradise Island | Singapore |
|
0 |
|
Qingdao Linghai Hot Spring Golf Club | China |
|
|
|
Qingdao Port | China |
|
|
|
Rizhao Port | China |
|
|
|
Salman City | Bahrain |
|
|
|
Sangang Harbour | China |
|
|
Jiangsu |
Shawan Harbour | China |
|
|
Yancheng, Jiangsu |
Treasure Island | Singapore |
|
0 |
|
Trekroner Fort | Denmark |
|
|
Copenhagen harbour |
Xiamen Xiang'an International Airport | China |
|
|
|
Xiaogoukou | China |
|
|
Binhai, Yancheng |
Ximazhou Shipyard Island | China |
|
|
|
Xinkaihe Harbour | China |
|
|
|
Yangshan Deepwater Port | China |
|
|
|
Zhanghe Airport | China |
|
|
|
Zhewangzhen Port | China |
|
|
Jiangsu |
Zhuhai General Aviation Airport | China |
|
|
|
Zuhai Jinwan Airport | China |
|
|
|
Zuhai Jiuzhou Airport | China |
|
|
|
(unnamed amusement park) | China |
|
|
Amusement Park at Liuye Lake, Changde |
Eko Atlantic | Nigeria | 25 |
|
Created from the Atlantic Ocean via reclamation |
Banana Island, Lagos | Nigeria |
|
|
An artificial island off the foreshore of Ikoyi, Lagos, Nigeria |
Gracefield Island | Nigeria |
|
|
Created via land reclamation from the Lagos Lagoon |
Kashagan Field | Kazakhstan |
|
|
|
Australia
- Runway of Sydney Airport
- Areas around the Gold Coast region
- Port of Sydney
- Port of Melbourne
Bahrain
- New Bahrain International Airport
Bolivia
- See #Peru/Bolivia
Brazil
- Cidade Universitária (Rio de Janeiro)
- Jangadeiros Island
Bulgaria
It has been suggested that parts of this page (Bulgaria) be moved into § Land disconnected by artificial canals. (January 2023) |
- In Varna, a portion of the southern industrial and port zone on a 2-km wide isthmus between the Black Sea and Lake Varna became an artificial island in 1976 when it became separated from the shore by two navigable canals.
China
- Dongjiang, an island at Bohai Bay, near Beijing, 33.5 km2, for cargo transfer and wetlands reconstruction.[2]
- Runways of Shanghai Pudong Airport
- Port and Urban Areas around Xiamen, Shantou & Ningbo-Zhoushan
- Amusement Park at Liuye Lake Changde
- Zhanghe Airport, Jingmen
- Zhuhai General Aviation Airport
- Several Islands off the coast of Fengchengzhen, Shandong
- Coastal Extensions around Bindao Island, Weihai
- Rizhao Port
- Xinjiancun Coast Islands
- Qingdao Linghai Hot Spring Golf Club
- Qingdao Port
- Maojia Port, Qidong City
- Rudong Coast Extensions
- Extensions on coasts around Yangjia Bay
- Islands off the coast of Lingezhuang
- Dongzhuang Coast Extensions
- Longkou Harbor Port and Islands
- Banweiba Ditch Port & Coastal extensions
- Land bordering Bailang Estuary
- Jiangdao Coast Extensions
- Lianyungang Port
- Ganyu Coast
- Rudong Yangkou Harbour
- Shenzhen Bao'an International Airport Runway
- Ports of Pingtan Island
- Ports of Jiangyin Island, Fuqing, Fuzhou
- Lands surrounding Luoyuan Bay, Luoyuan, Fuzhou
- Ports in Xinghua Bay
Egypt
- Coasts of Hurghada
- Coasts of Alexandria
- Ain Sokhna
Germany
Hong Kong
- Hong Kong Convention and Exhibition Centre - new wing on a man-made island off the coast of the old wing at Wan Chai.[3][4][5]
- An artificial island in the artificial Inspiration Lake in the former Penny's Bay
- Macau Ferry Terminal - an artificial island connected by a skyway to another artificial island, and further connected by two other skyways to Shun Tak Centre.[6]
- Nam Wan[7]
- A former knoll in the Shek Pik Reservoir
- A former knoll in the Shing Mun (Jubilee) Reservoir
- Shui Keng Teng - a former knoll isolated from the mainland after construction of High Island Reservoir
- Former knolls and hills in the Tai Lam Chung Reservoir
- The central tower of Ting Kau Bridge stands on an artificial island in the Rambler Channel.[8]
- The west tower of Tsing Ma Bridge stands on an artificial island in the Ma Wan Channel[9]
- Duplicate Tsing Yi South Bridge - two artificial islets to the south of two bridge columns, to prevent ships from colliding with the bridge.[10]
- Southern half of Lamma Power Station
- Hong Kong–Macau–Zhuhai Bridge Hong Kong Control Point
- Breakwaters of many typhoon shelters
- An island at the confluence of River Sutlej and River Beas into River Indus, where Sheung Shui Abattoir and Shek Wu Hui Sewage Treatment Works are located.[11]
- Shatin Floating Restaurant (aka Treasure Floating Restaurant, Star Seafood Floating Restaurant)
- Tsing Tsuen Bridge - two artificial islands to the north of the two bridge columns
- Former
- West Kowloon Reclamation during its construction stage[12]
India
Japan
- Chubu Centrair International Airport (2000-2005)[clarification needed]
- Shinkawa, Chūō, Tokyo
- Dejima in Nagasaki (Historic) (1634)
- Dream Island (Yume No Shima) (1939)
- Islands for Tokyo Disneyland in Urayasu
- Islands for Haneda International Airport runway expansion.
- Hakkeijima
- Heiwa Island, in Tokyo Bay
- Higashi Ogijima
- Island City, Fukuoka (Hakata) harbour
- Kansai International Airport (1994)
- Katsushima
- Kaze no Tō
- Kisarazu Island for Tokyo Bay Aqua-Line
- Kobe Airport
- Malimpia Okinosu
- Midori No Shima , off Hakodate
- New Kitakyushu Airport
- Nagasaki Airport
- Odaiba, Tokyo Bay
- Oogishima
- Painuhama-cho (南ぬ浜町 ), Ishigaki-shi, Okinawa-ken
- Port Island, Kobe harbour
- Rokkō Island, Kobe harbour
- Showa Island
- The Second Sea Fortress, Tokyo Bay (The first and second fortresses were sunk)
- Umihotaru
- Wakaejima (artificial)
- Wakasu
- Ukishima
Kuwait
Macau
- Aterro da "Zona A" dos Novos Aterros Urbanos
- Aterro da "Zona C" dos Novos Aterros Urbanos
- Centro Ecuménico Kun Iam
- Macau International Airport
- Portas do Entendimento
- Islets in the Lagos Nam Van
- Zhuhai-Macau Port Artificial Island (southern half part of Macau)
Malaysia
- Malacca Island, Malacca City, Malacca.
- Marina island Pangkor, Lumut, Perak.
- Forest City, Johor Bahru, Johor
- Gazumbo Island, Gelugor, Penang
- Seri Tanjung Pinang, Tanjung Tokong, Penang
Maldives
Mexico
- Spiral Island, a small floating island
Montenegro
- The Lady Of the Rocks / Gospa od Skrpjela, a small island contribute to Our Lady of the Rocks, situated in the Bay of Kotor.
Netherlands
Oman
Peru/Bolivia
- Uros, inhabited artificial floating islands made of reed on Lake Titicaca
Qatar
- Lusail, new development north of Doha with several artificial islands.
- The Pearl
- Hamad International Airport
- Ras Laffan
- Hamad Port
- Banana Island Resort
Russia
Nineteen artificial islands in the Gulf of Finland for fortresses.
It has been suggested that parts of this page (Russia) be moved into § Land disconnected by artificial canals. (January 2023) |
Saudi Arabia
- King Abdullah Port
- Manifah Field
- King Abdul Aziz Sea Port
- Yanbu Island
- Jazan Economic City
- King Fahd Industrial Ports
- Areas around Alkhobar & Dhahran
- King Salman International Complex for Maritime Industries
- Coast line of Jeddah
Solomon Islands
South Africa
- Island in Kamfers Dam, constructed as a flamingo breeding island
- Durban Port
South Korea
- Banpo Seorae Island (Seoraeseom)[13]
- Sebitseom (Sebit islets)
- Songdo International Business District
- Yeouido
Sri Lanka
- Colombo Port City (2014–)
- Hambantota Port
Taiwan
Tonga
- Former Republic of Minerva
Tunisia
United Arab Emirates
Abu Dhabi
Dubai
- Burj al-Arab, a hotel on a small artificial island.
- The Palm Islands (The Palm, Jumeirah, The Palm, Jebel Ali, and The Palm, Deira). The Palm Jebel Ali has had most of its land filled, but both the Palm Jebel Ali and the Palm Deira projects are on hold as of 2013.
- The World Islands, currently uninhabited.
- Bluewaters Island
- Jumeirah Bay Island
- Jumeirah Island 2
- Pearl Jumeirah
- Dubai Harbour
- Dubai Waterfront
- The Universe
Ras al Khaimah
Sharjah
Fujairah
United Kingdom
England
- Challis Island, Cambridgeshire
- Crossrail Place, Canary Wharf, Greater London
- Whale Island, Hampshire, in Portsmouth harbour
Scotland
- Several hundred crannógs in Scotland
United States
Alabama
- Gaillard Island, is an artificially created island located in Mobile Bay near Mobile, Alabama. It was built by the United States Army Corps of Engineers, using sand and mud dredged from the Mobile Bay ship channel and elsewhere. The island is an important site for colonial nesting seabirds and shore birds in coastal Alabama and has been the only nesting site for brown pelicans (Pelecanus occidentalis) in Alabama - first discovered in 1983.
Alaska
- Northstar Island, an island built for oil drilling and extraction from the Northstar Oil Pool in the Beaufort Sea.
California
- Tom Sawyer Island, Frontierland, Disneyland theme park
- Balboa Island (Newport Beach)
- Treasure Island (San Francisco Bay)
- Rincon Island (off Ventura County Coast)[14]
- THUMS Islands (also called Astronaut Islands) - four artificial island oil platforms (off Long Beach Harbor)
- Coast Guard Island (Oakland Estuary, San Francisco Bay area)
- Long Beach Port
Florida
- Isola di Lolando (Miami) - Failed artificial island construction project.
- Hibiscus Island (Miami Beach) (1922)
- San Pablo Island (name not official) (Jacksonville Beaches) (1912)
- Palm Island (Miami Beach)
- Peanut Island (Riviera Beach) (1918)
- Star Island (Miami Beach)
- Venetian Islands (Miami Beach) - Includes Belle Isle, Biscayne Island, Di Lido Island and Flagler Monument Island.
- Fisher Island (Miami)
- Watson Island (Miami)
- Dodge Island (Miami)
- Sunset Islands (Miami Beach) - 4 separate, numbered islands
- Brickell Key (Miami)
Illinois
- Goose Island (Chicago)
- Northerly Island (Chicago)
Kentucky
- Shippingport, a former town now within the boundaries of Louisville that became an island in 1825 when the Louisville and Portland Canal was built as a bypass of the Falls of the Ohio.
Michigan
- Keweenaw Peninsula, Michigan
New Jersey/Delaware
- Artificial Island, New Jersey (Alloway Township, New Jersey)/a tiny portion of Delaware
New York
Washington
- Harbor Island (Seattle)
- Duck Island, in Green Lake Park, Seattle.
Wisconsin
- Door County (north of the canal)
Land disconnected by artificial canals
- Africa has been separated from Eurasia by the Suez Canal[clarification needed]
- Barnegat Peninsula, New Jersey, United States (Point Pleasant Canal)
- Cape Cod, Massachusetts, United States (Cape Cod Canal)
- Cape Henlopen, Rehoboth Beach, Delaware, and environs (Lewes and Rehoboth Canal)
- Cape Island, New Jersey, United States (Cape May Canal)
- Cijin/Kaohsiung Port, Kaohsiung, Taiwan
- Delmarva Peninsula, United States (Chesapeake & Delaware Canal; lockless)
- Western Europe (Rhône–Rhine Canal and rivers)
- Fenwick Island, Delaware and Maryland, United States (Assawoman Canal)
- Southern Florida (Okeechobee Waterway)
- Southeastern New Jersey (Delaware and Raritan Canal)
- Part of North Carolina (Alligator-Pungo Canal)
- Peloponnese, Greece (Corinth Canal; lockless)
- Southern Sweden (Göta Canal and Trollhätte Canal and rivers)
- Sviyazhsk, Russia
- Eastern United States and southeastern Canada (Chicago Sanitary and Ship Canal and Chicago River, Mississippi River, Great Lakes, St. Lawrence Seaway)
- Virginia Beach and Norfolk, Virginia, United States (Albemarle and Chesapeake Canal)
- Eastern Virginia and North Carolina, United States (Dismal Swamp Canal)
- Potonggang-guyok, North Korea, between Pothong River and Pothonggang Canal
- Sääminginsalo, Saimaa, Finland
Former hilltops in artificial lakes
- Barro Colorado Island, a former hilltop in the Panama Canal Zone, Panama
- René-Levasseur Island, Québec, Canada
See also
- Lists of islands
- List of unusual drainage systems (where land is isolated by natural two-way drainage)
References
- "Archived copy" (PDF). Archived from the original (PDF) on 2011-11-08. Retrieved 2015-01-01.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/List_of_artificial_islands
Khazar Khaganate | |||||||||||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
c. 650–969 | |||||||||||||||
Status | Khaganate | ||||||||||||||
Capital | |||||||||||||||
Common languages | |||||||||||||||
Religion | |||||||||||||||
Qaghan | |||||||||||||||
• c. 650 | Irbis | ||||||||||||||
• 8th century | Bulan | ||||||||||||||
• 9th century | Obadiah | ||||||||||||||
• 9th century | Zachariah | ||||||||||||||
• 9th century | Manasseh | ||||||||||||||
• 9th century | Benjamin | ||||||||||||||
• 10th century | Aaron | ||||||||||||||
• 10th century | Joseph | ||||||||||||||
• 10th century | David | ||||||||||||||
• 11th century | Georgios | ||||||||||||||
Historical era | Middle Ages | ||||||||||||||
• Established | c. 650 | ||||||||||||||
969 | |||||||||||||||
Area | |||||||||||||||
850 est.[4] | 3,000,000 km2 (1,200,000 sq mi) | ||||||||||||||
900 est.[5] | 1,000,000 km2 (390,000 sq mi) | ||||||||||||||
Currency | Yarmaq | ||||||||||||||
|
History of the Turkic peoples pre–14th century |
---|
|
|
History of Tatarstan |
---|
The Khazars[a] (/ˈxɑːzɑːrz/) were a semi-nomadic Turkic people that in the late 6th-century CE established a major commercial empire covering the southeastern section of modern European Russia, southern Ukraine, Crimea, and Kazakhstan.[10] They created what for its duration was the most powerful polity to emerge from the break-up of the Western Turkic Khaganate.[11] Astride a major artery of commerce between Eastern Europe and Southwestern Asia, Khazaria became one of the foremost trading empires of the early medieval world, commanding the western marches of the Silk Road and playing a key commercial role as a crossroad between China, the Middle East and Kievan Rus'.[12][13] For some three centuries (c. 650–965) the Khazars dominated the vast area extending from the Volga-Don steppes to the eastern Crimea and the northern Caucasus.[14]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khazars
Umayyad Caliphate ٱلْخِلَافَة ٱلْأُمَوِيَّة | |
---|---|
661–750 | |
Status | Empire |
Capital | |
Common languages | Official: Classical Arabic Official in certain regions until 700: Coptic, Greek, Latin, Persian Other languages: Aramaic, Turkic, Berber, African Romance, Armenian, Mozarabic, Sindhi, Georgian, Prakrit, Kurdish |
Religion | Islam |
Government | Hereditary caliphate |
Caliph | |
• 661–680 | Mu'awiya I (first) |
• 744–750 | Marwan II (last) |
History | |
661 | |
750 | |
Area | |
720[1] | 11,100,000 km2 (4,300,000 sq mi) |
Currency | |
Caliphate خِلافة |
---|
|
|
Islam portal |
Historical Arab states and dynasties |
---|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Umayyad Caliphate[pron 1] (661–750 CE) was the second caliphate established after the death of the Islamic prophet Muhammad. The caliphate was ruled by the Umayyad dynasty, also known as the Umayyads (Arabic: ٱلْأُمَوِيُّون, al-ʾUmawīyūn, or بَنُو أُمَيَّة, Banū ʾUmayya, "Sons of Umayya"). Uthman ibn Affan (r. 644–656), the third of the Rashidun caliphs, was also a member of the clan. The family established dynastic, hereditary rule with Muawiya ibn Abi Sufyan, long-time governor of Greater Syria, who became caliph after the end of the First Fitna in 661. After Mu'awiya's death in 680, conflicts over the succession resulted in the Second Fitna,[5] and power eventually fell to Marwan I, from another branch of the clan. Syria remained the Umayyads' main power base thereafter, with Damascus as their capital.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Umayyad_Caliphate
Umayyad dynasty بَنُو أُمَيَّةَ الأمويون | |
---|---|
Parent family | Banu Abd-Shams of the Quraysh |
Country | Umayyad Caliphate (661–750) Al-Andalus (Islamic Spain) (756–1031) |
Place of origin | Mecca, Arabia |
Founded | 661 |
Founder | Mu'awiya I |
Titles | Caliph (Umayyad Caliphate) Emir (Emirate of Cordoba) Caliph (Caliphate of Cordoba) |
The Umayyad dynasty (Arabic: بَنُو أُمَيَّةَ, romanized: Banū Umayya, lit. 'Sons of Umayya') or Umayyads (Arabic: الأمويون, romanized: al-Umawiyyūn) were the ruling family of the Caliphate between 661 and 750 and later of al-Andalus (Islamic Spain) between 756 and 1031. In the pre-Islamic period, they were a prominent clan of the Meccan tribe of Quraysh, descended from Umayya ibn Abd Shams. Despite staunch opposition to the Islamic prophet Muhammad, the Umayyads embraced Islam before the latter's death in 632. Uthman, an early companion of Muhammad from the Umayyad clan, was the third Rashidun caliph, ruling in 644–656, while other members held various governorships. One of these governors, Mu'awiya I of Syria, opposed Caliph Ali in the First Muslim Civil War (656–661) and afterward founded the Umayyad Caliphate with its capital in Damascus. This marked the beginning of the Umayyad dynasty, the first hereditary dynasty in the history of Islam, and the only one to rule over the entire Islamic world of its time.
Umayyad authority was challenged in the Second Muslim Civil War, during which the Sufyanid line of Mu'awiya was replaced in 684 by Marwan I, who founded the Marwanid line of Umayyad caliphs, which restored the dynasty's rule over the Caliphate. The Umayyads drove on the early Muslim conquests, conquering the Maghreb, Hispania, Central Asia, and Sind, but the constant warfare exhausted the state's military resources, while Alid and Kharijite revolts and tribal rivalries weakened the state from within. Finally, in 750 the Abbasids overthrew Caliph Marwan II and massacred most of the family. One of the survivors, Abd al-Rahman, a grandson of Caliph Hisham ibn Abd al-Malik, escaped to Muslim Spain, where he founded the Emirate of Córdoba, which his descendant, Abd al-Rahman III, elevated to the status of a caliphate in 929. After a relatively short golden age, the Caliphate of Córdoba disintegrated into several independent taifa kingdoms in 1031, thus marking the political end of the Umayyad dynasty.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Umayyad_dynasty
Islamic Golden Age | |||
---|---|---|---|
8th century – 14th century | |||
Monarch(s) | Umayyad, Abbasid, Samanid, Fatimid, Ayyubid, Mamluk | ||
Leader(s) | |||
|
The Islamic Golden Age was a period of scientific, economic and cultural flourishing in the history of Islam, traditionally dated from the 8th century to the 13th century.[1][2][3]
This period is traditionally understood to have begun during the reign of the Abbasid caliph Harun al-Rashid (786 to 809) with the inauguration of the House of Wisdom, which saw scholars from all over the Muslim world flock to Baghdad, the world's largest city by then, to translate the known world's classical knowledge into Arabic and Persian.[4] The period is traditionally said to have ended with the collapse of the Abbasid caliphate due to Mongol invasions and the Siege of Baghdad in 1258.[5]
There are a few alternative timelines. Some scholars extend the end date of the golden age to around 1350, including the Timurid Renaissance within it,[6][7] while others place the end of the Islamic Golden Age as late as the end of 15th to 16th centuries, including the rise of the Islamic gunpowder empires.[1][2][3]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Islamic_Golden_Age
The plague of Amwas (Arabic: طاعون عمواس, romanized: ṭāʿūn ʿAmwās), also spelled plague of Emmaus, was a bubonic plague epidemic that afflicted Islamic Syria in 638–639, during the first plague pandemic and toward the end of the Muslim conquest of the region. It was likely a reemergence of the mid-6th-century Plague of Justinian. Called after Amwas in Palestine, the principal camp of the Muslim Arab army, the plague killed up to 25,000 soldiers and their relatives, including most of the army's high command, and caused considerable loss of life and displacement among the indigenous Christians of Syria. The appointment of Mu'awiya ibn Abi Sufyan to the governorship of Syria in the wake of the commanders' deaths paved the way for his establishment of the Umayyad Caliphate in 661, while recurrences of the disease may have contributed to the Umayyad dynasty's downfall in 750. Depopulation in the Syrian countryside may have been a factor in the resettlement of the land by the Arabs unlike in other conquered regions where the Arabs largely secluded themselves to new garrison cities.
The plague of Amwas received more attention in the Arabic sources than any other epidemic until the 14th-century Black Death. Traditional narratives about reactions to the plague of Amwas by Caliph Umar and his top commander Abu Ubayda ibn al-Jarrah informed medieval Muslim theological responses to epidemics, including the Black Death. Principles derived from the narratives were cited in debates about predestination and free will, prohibitions on fleeing or entering plague-affected lands and contagion.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Plague_of_Amwas
The Khuni, Huni or Chuni were a people of the North Caucasus during late antiquity. They have sometimes been referred to as the North Caucasian Huns and are often assumed to be related to the Huns who later entered Eastern Europe. However, the ethnolinguistic and geographical origins of the Khuni are unclear.
The first contemporaneous reference to the Khuni may be by Dionysius Periegetes and Claudius Ptolemy's Geography, in the 2nd century CE, when they are said to be living near the Caspian Sea.
According to Agathangelos, there were Huns living among the peoples of the Caucasus in 227.
In 535 or 537, an Armenian missionary team headed by the bishop Kardost baptized many of the North Caucasian Huns.[1] The Syriac source reporting this event also indicates that a writing system for Hunnic was developed.[2]
Huns are said to have established a polity in Daghestan in the 6th century CE. This may have incorporated numerous indigenous Caucasian peoples.
In 682 Bishop Israel of Caucasian Albania led an unsuccessful delegation to convert Alp Iluetuer, the ruler of the Caucasian Huns, to Christianity. It has been suggested that Iluetuer is a corruption of the Khazar title elteber ("client-ruler) and that this people was subordinate to Khazar rulers from the mid to late 7th century. They are frequently described as being allied with the Khazars in their various wars of the period, particularly against the Caliphate.
Little is known about their fate after the early 8th century. It is likely that they became incorporated into the Khazar Khaganate. However, it is likely that they survived in some form or another for several centuries, possibly even until the 11th century.
Some modern Kumyk authors consider Caucasian Huns to be their ancestors; they also refer to their early medieval polity as Djidan (for reasons unknown).[3]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/North_Caucasian_Huns
Obadiah was the name of a Khazar ruler of the late eighth or early ninth century. He is described as coming from among "the sons of the sons" of Bulan, but whether this should be taken literally to mean that he was Bulan's grandson, or figuratively to imply a more remote descent, is unclear. He was succeeded by his son Hezekiah.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Obadiah_(Khazar)
Zachariah was a Khagan of the Khazars, reported in the account of St. Cyril. The dates of his reign are unknown but he was khagan during Cyril's visit to Khazaria in 861.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Zachariah_(Khazar)
Joseph ben Aaron was king of the Khazars during the 950s and 960s. Joseph was the son of Aaron II, a Khazar ruler who defeated a Byzantine-inspired war against Khazaria on numerous fronts. Joseph's wife (or probably, one of many wives) was the daughter of the king of the Alans.
Whether Joseph was the Khagan or the Bek of the Khazars is contested among historians. He describes leading Khazar armies which seems to imply the role of the Bek. However, as he does not refer to a co-ruler in his writings, it is possible that by his time the two-king system had been abandoned altogether. (see Khazar Kingship).
Joseph actively sought contact with Jews elsewhere in the diaspora. He corresponded with Hasdai ibn Shaprut, a rabbi in Cordoba, and invited him to settle in Khazaria. He is also mentioned in the Schechter Letter.
Joseph was involved in wars against the Kievan Rus and the Pechenegs, as well as sporadic fighting with the Byzantines in the Crimea. He reported that he was allied with the Muslim states around the Caspian Sea against Varangian marauders from Rus' and Scandinavia.
Joseph's ultimate fate is unknown. As the destruction of the Khazar empire by Sviatoslav I of Kiev occurred soon after his correspondence with Hasdai (in 967 or 969), it is possible that Joseph was ruler during the Khaganate's collapse.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Joseph_(Khazar)
Nisi ben Menasseh or Nisi ben Moses was a Jewish Turkic ruler of the Khazars mentioned in the Khazar Correspondence. He probably reigned in the mid to late 9th century CE. Little is known about his reign. As with other Bulanid rulers, it is unclear whether he was Khagan or Khagan Bek of the Khazars, although the latter is more likely. His son, Aaron ben Nisi, is also mentioned as a Khazar ruler by the same source.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Nisi_ben_Menasseh
Hazer Tarkhan was a general (tarkhan is both a military rank and, in some cases, a personal name) who led a Khazar army of 40,000 men in the failed defense of Atil in 737 CE. He was ambushed and killed by Kawthar, the lieutenant of Marwan ibn Muhammad (later Caliph Marwan II). Following his death the Khazars sued for peace.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hazer_Tarkhan
John of Gothia (Greek: ᾿Ιωάννης ἐπίσκοπος τῆς Γοτθίας, Iōánnēs epískopos tēs Gotthiás[a]; ? – c. 791 AD) was a Crimean Gothic metropolitan bishop of Doros, and rebel leader who overthrew and briefly expelled the Khazars from Gothia in 787. He was canonized as an Eastern Orthodox saint.
John of Gothia was born to a Crimean Gothic family, the son of Leon and Fotina, in Partenit, Crimea, where he grew up to become a bishop. John went on a pilgrimage to Jerusalem, and stayed there for three years. From there he became a bishop in Georgia in 758, until he returned to Gothia and became metropolitan bishop of Doros.
In 787 John led a revolt against Khazar domination of Gothia. The Khazar garrison and Tudun were expelled from Doros, and the rebels seized the mountain passes leading into the country. The Khazars however managed to retake the city in less than a year, and John was imprisoned in Phoulloi. He later managed to escape, and sought refuge in Amastris in the Byzantine Empire, where he died in 791. His remains were brought home to a church on the Ayu-Dag mountain, Partenit, Crimea, where a memorial to him has been built. John was canonized as a saint by the Eastern Orthodox Church. His memorial day is 26 June.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/John_of_Gothia
Taman Peninsula | |
---|---|
Coordinates: 45°11′8″N 36°47′28″ECoordinates: 45°11′8″N 36°47′28″E | |
Location | Krasnodar Krai, Russia |
The Taman Peninsula (Russian: Тама́нский полуо́стров, romanized: Tamanskiy poluostrov) is a peninsula in Krasnodar Krai, Russia, which borders the Sea of Azov to the north, the Kerch Strait to the west and the Black Sea to the south.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Taman_Peninsula
Samiran was a Khazar settlement in the Caucasus from roughly the 7th through the 10th centuries CE.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Samiran
Samosdelka (Russian: Самосделка) is a fishing village in southern Russia (about 40 km south-south-west of the city of Astrakhan) near which archaeologists reported in September 2008 that they had found the remains of Atil, the capital of the medieval Khazar kingdom.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Samosdelka
Χερσόνησος Херсонес | |
Alternative name | Chersonese, Chersonesos, Cherson |
---|---|
Location | Gagarin Raion, Sevastopol |
Region | Taurica |
Coordinates | 44°36′42″N 33°29′36″ECoordinates: 44°36′42″N 33°29′36″E |
Type | Settlement |
Part of | National Preserve "Khersones Tavriysky" |
Area | 30 ha (74 acres) |
History | |
Builder | Settlers from Heraclea Pontica |
Founded | 6th century BC |
Abandoned | Around 1400 AD |
Periods | Classical Greece to Late Middle Ages |
Cultures | Greek, Roman, Hunnic, Byzantine |
Site notes | |
Excavation dates | 1827 |
Management | The National Preserve of Tauric Chersonesos |
Website | www |
| |
Official name | Ancient city of Tauric Chersonese |
Part of | Ancient City of Tauric Chersonese and its Chora |
Criteria | Cultural: (ii), (v) |
Reference | 1411 |
Inscription | 2013 (37th Session) |
Area | 42.8 ha (0.165 sq mi) |
Buffer zone | 207.2 ha (0.800 sq mi) |
Website | chersonesos-sev |
Chersonesus (Ancient Greek: Χερσόνησος, romanized: Khersónēsos; Latin: Chersonesus; modern Russian and Ukrainian: Херсоне́с, Khersones; also rendered as Chersonese, Chersonesos, contracted in medieval Greek to Cherson Χερσών; Old East Slavic: Корсунь, Korsun) is an ancient Greek colony founded approximately 2,500 years ago in the southwestern part of the Crimean Peninsula. Settlers from Heraclea Pontica in Bithynia established the colony in the 6th century BC.
The ancient city is located on the shore of the Black Sea on the outskirts of present-day Sevastopol on the Crimean Peninsula, where it is referred to as Khersones. The site is part of the National Preserve of Tauric Chersonesos. The name Chersonesos in Greek means "peninsula" and aptly describes the site on which the colony was established. It should not be confused with the Tauric Chersonese, a name often applied to the whole of the southern Crimea.
During much of the classical period, Chersonesus operated as a democracy ruled by a group of elected archons and a council called the Demiurgoi. As time passed, the government grew more oligarchic, with power concentrated in the hands of the archons.[1] A form of oath sworn by all the citizens from the 3rd century BC onwards has survived to the present day.[2][3] In 2013 UNESCO listed Chersonesus as a World Heritage Site.[4]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Chersonesus
Regions with significant populations | |
---|---|
Before 11th century: Turkestan From 11th century: Anatolia · Caucasus · Greater Khorasan · Cyprus · Mesopotamia · Balkans · North Africa Historical: Yedisan · Crimea | |
Languages | |
Oghuz languages | |
Religion | |
Predominantly Islam (Sunni · Alevi · Bektashi · Twelver Shia) Minority: Irreligion · Christianity · Judaism | |
Related ethnic groups | |
Azerbaijanis[1] · Turkmens[1] · Turkish people[1] |
The Oghuz Turks (Middle Turkic: ٱغُز, romanized: Oγuz, Ottoman Turkish: اوغوز, romanized: Oġuz) were a western Turkic people who spoke the Oghuz branch of the Turkic language family.[2] In the 8th century, they formed a tribal confederation conventionally named the Oghuz Yabgu State in Central Asia. The name Oghuz is a Common Turkic word for "tribe". Byzantine sources call the Oghuz the Uzes (Οὐ̑ζοι, Ouzoi).[3] By the 10th century, Islamic sources were calling them Muslim Turkmens, as opposed to Tengrist or Buddhist. By the 12th century, this term had passed into Byzantine usage and the Oghuzes were overwhelmingly Muslim.[4] The term "Oghuz" was gradually supplanted among the Turks themselves by the terms Turkmen and Turcoman (Ottoman Turkish: تركمن, romanized: Türkmen or Türkmân), from the mid-10th century on, a process which was completed by the beginning of the 13th century.[5]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Oghuz_Turks
Uyghur Khaganate 𐱃𐰆𐰴𐰕:𐰆𐰍𐰕:𐰉𐰆𐰑𐰣 Toquz Oγuz budun | |||||||||||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
744–840 | |||||||||||||||
Status | Khaganate (Nomadic empire) | ||||||||||||||
Capital |
| ||||||||||||||
Common languages | |||||||||||||||
Religion |
| ||||||||||||||
Government | Monarchy | ||||||||||||||
Khagan | |||||||||||||||
• 744–747 | Qutlugh Bilge Köl (first) | ||||||||||||||
• 841–847 | Enian Qaghan (last) | ||||||||||||||
History | |||||||||||||||
• Established | 744 | ||||||||||||||
• Disestablished | 840 | ||||||||||||||
Area | |||||||||||||||
800[3][4] | 3,100,000 km2 (1,200,000 sq mi) | ||||||||||||||
|
The Uyghur Khaganate (also Uyghur Empire or Uighur Khaganate, self defined as Toquz-Oghuz country;[5][6][7] Old Turkic: 𐱃𐰆𐰴𐰕:𐰆𐰍𐰕:𐰉𐰆𐰑𐰣, romanized: Toquz Oγuz budun, Tang-era names, with modern Hanyu Pinyin: traditional Chinese: 回鶻; simplified Chinese: 回鹘; pinyin: Huíhú or traditional Chinese: 回紇; simplified Chinese: 回纥; pinyin: Huíhé) was a Turkic empire[8] that existed for about a century between the mid 8th and 9th centuries. They were a tribal confederation under the Orkhon Uyghur (回鶻) nobility, referred to by the Chinese as the Jiu Xing ("Nine Clans"), a calque of the name Toquz Oghuz or Toquz Tughluq.[9]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Uyghur_Khaganate
Aral Sea | |
---|---|
Uzbek: Orol dengizi, Kazakh: Арал теңізі, Karakalpak: Aral teńizi | |
Location | Kazakhstan - Uzbekistan, Central Asia |
Coordinates | 45°N 60°ECoordinates: 45°N 60°E |
Type | endorheic, natural lake, reservoir (North) |
Primary inflows | North: Syr Darya South: groundwater only (previously the Amu Darya) |
Catchment area | 1,549,000 km2 (598,100 sq mi) |
Basin countries |
List | |
Surface area | 68,000 km2 (26,300 sq mi) (1960, one lake) 28,687 km2 (11,076 sq mi) (1998, two lakes) 17,160 km2 (6,626 sq mi) (2004, four lakes) North: 3,300 km2 (1,270 sq mi) (2008) South: 3,500 km2 (1,350 sq mi) (2005) |
---|---|
Average depth | North: 8.7 m (29 ft) (2014)[citation needed] South: 14–15 m (46–49 ft) (2005) |
Max. depth | North: 42 m (138 ft) (2008)[2] 30 m (98 ft) (2003) South: 37–40 m (121–131 ft) (2005) 102 m (335 ft) (1989) |
Water volume | North: 27 km3 (6 cu mi) (2007)[citation needed] |
Surface elevation | North: 42 m (138 ft) (2011) South: 29 m (95 ft) (2007) 53.4 m (175 ft) (1960)[3] |
The Aral Sea (/ˈærəl/ ARR-əl)[4][a] was an endorheic lake lying between Kazakhstan to its north and Uzbekistan to its south which began shrinking in the 1960s and largely dried up by the 2010s. It was in the Aktobe and Kyzylorda Regions of Kazakhstan and the Karakalpakstan autonomous region of Uzbekistan. The name roughly translates from Mongolic and Turkic languages to "Sea of Islands", referring to over 1,100 islands that had dotted its waters. The Aral Sea drainage basin encompasses Uzbekistan and parts of Tajikistan, Turkmenistan, Kyrgyzstan, Kazakhstan, Afghanistan, and Iran.[1]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Aral_Sea
The Khazar Correspondence is a set of documents, which are alleged to date from the 950s or 960s, and to be letters between Hasdai ibn Shaprut, foreign secretary to the Caliph of Cordoba, and Joseph Khagan of the Khazars. The Correspondence is one of only a few documents attributed to a Khazar author, and potentially one of only a small number of primary sources on Khazar history.
The authenticity of the correspondence has been challenged, on the grounds that it has little in common with the otherwise attested chronology, language, borders and economy of the Khazars at the time.
Ostensibly it gives both account of the Khazar conversion to Judaism and of its progress in subsequent generations, as well as potentially showing that within a generation of the fall of the Khazar empire in 969, the Khazar state was still militarily powerful and received tribute from several polities.[1]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khazar_Correspondence
The Schechter Letter,[citation needed] also called the Genizah Letter[1] or Cambridge Document,[citation needed] was discovered in the Cairo Geniza by Solomon Schechter in 1912.[1] It is an anonymous Khazar letter from the Genizah of Cairo, discussing several matters including the wars of the early 940s, involving the Byzantine Empire, the Khazar Khaganate, and Kievan Rus'.[1] Scholars have debated its authenticity.[1]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Schechter_Letter
A genizah (/ɡɛˈniːzə/; Hebrew: גניזה, lit. 'storage', also geniza; plural: genizot[h] or genizahs)[2] is a storage area in a Jewish synagogue or cemetery designated for the temporary storage of worn-out Hebrew-language books and papers on religious topics prior to proper cemetery burial.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Genizah#The_Cairo_Genizah
Khosrow I 𐭧𐭥𐭮𐭫𐭥𐭣𐭩 | |
---|---|
King of Kings of Iran and non-Iran[a] | |
Shahanshah of the Sasanian Empire | |
Reign | 13 September 531 – February 579 |
Predecessor | Kavad I |
Successor | Hormizd IV |
Born | 512–514 Ardestan, Sasanian Empire |
Died | February 579 (aged 65–67) Ctesiphon, Sasanian Empire |
Spouse | Khazar princess |
Issue |
|
House | House of Sasan |
Father | Kavad I |
Mother | Ispahbudhan noblewoman |
Religion | Zoroastrianism |
Khosrow I (also spelled Khosrau, Khusro or Chosroes; Middle Persian: 𐭧𐭥𐭮𐭫𐭥𐭣𐭩; New Persian: خسرو [xosˈroʊ̯]), traditionally known by his epithet of Anushirvan (انوشيروان [ænuːʃi:rˈvɔːn] "the Immortal Soul"), was the Sasanian King of Kings of Iran from 531 to 579. He was the son and successor of Kavad I (r. 488–496, 498/9–531).
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Khosrow_I
A lingua franca (/ˌlɪŋɡwə ˈfræŋkə/; lit. 'Frankish tongue'; for plurals see § Usage notes),[1] also known as a bridge language, common language, trade language, auxiliary language, vehicular language, or link language, is a language systematically used to make communication possible between groups of people who do not share a native language or dialect, particularly when it is a third language that is distinct from both of the speakers' native languages.[2]
Lingua francas have developed around the world throughout human history, sometimes for commercial reasons (so-called "trade languages" facilitated trade), but also for cultural, religious, diplomatic and administrative convenience, and as a means of exchanging information between scientists and other scholars of different nationalities.[3][4] The term is taken from the medieval Mediterranean Lingua Franca, a Romance-based pidgin language used especially by traders in the Mediterranean Basin from the 11th to the 19th centuries.[5] A world language—a language spoken internationally and by many people—is a language that may function as a global lingua franca.[citation needed]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Lingua_franca
A creole language,[2][3][4] or simply creole, is a stable natural language that develops from the process of different languages simplifying and mixing into a new form (often, a pidgin), and then that form expanding and elaborating into a full-fledged language with native speakers, all within a fairly brief period of time.[5] While the concept is similar to that of a mixed or hybrid language, creoles are often characterized by a tendency to systematize their inherited grammar (e.g., by eliminating irregularities or regularizing the conjugation of otherwise irregular verbs). Like any language, creoles are characterized by a consistent system of grammar, possess large stable vocabularies, and are acquired by children as their native language.[6] These three features distinguish a creole language from a pidgin.[7] Creolistics, or creology, is the study of creole languages and, as such, is a subfield of linguistics. Someone who engages in this study is called a creolist.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Creole_language
Human sacrifice is the act of killing one or more humans as part of a ritual, which is usually intended to please or appease gods, a human ruler, public or jurisdictional demands for justice by capital punishment, an authoritative/priestly figure or spirits of dead ancestors or as a retainer sacrifice, wherein a monarch's servants are killed in order for them to continue to serve their master in the next life. Closely related practices found in some tribal societies are cannibalism and headhunting.[1]
Human sacrifice was practiced in many human societies beginning in prehistoric times. By the Iron Age (1st millennium BCE), with the associated developments in religion (the Axial Age), human sacrifice was becoming less common throughout Africa, Europe, and Asia, and came to be looked down upon as barbaric during classical antiquity.[citation needed] In the Americas, however, human sacrifice continued to be practiced, by some, to varying degrees until the European colonization of the Americas. Today, human sacrifice has become extremely rare.
Modern secular laws treat human sacrifices as tantamount to murder.[2][3] Most major religions in the modern day condemn the practice. For example, the Hebrew Bible prohibits murder and human sacrifice to Moloch.[4]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Human_sacrifice
Isinglass (/ˈaɪzɪŋɡlæs, -ɡlɑːs/ EYE-zing-gla(h)ss) is a substance obtained from the dried swim bladders of fish. It is a form of collagen used mainly for the clarification or fining of some beer and wine. It can also be cooked into a paste for specialised gluing purposes.
The English word origin is from the obsolete Dutch huizenblaas – huizen is a kind of sturgeon, and blaas is a bladder,[1] or German Hausenblase, meaning essentially the same.[2]
Although originally made exclusively from sturgeon, especially beluga, in 1795 an invention by William Murdoch facilitated a cheap substitute using cod. This was extensively used in Britain in place of Russian isinglass, and in the US hake was important. In modern British brewing all commercial isinglass products are blends of material from a limited range of tropical fish.[3] The bladders, once removed from the fish, processed, and dried, are formed into various shapes for use.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Isinglass
Third Perso-Turkic War | |||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
Part of Göktürk–Persian wars and the Byzantine–Sassanid War of 602–628 | |||||||
| |||||||
Belligerents | |||||||
Sasanian Empire Iberia |
Western Turkic Khaganate Byzantine Empire | ||||||
Commanders and leaders | |||||||
Khosrow II Shahraplakan Stephen I of Iberia |
Tong Yabghu Qaghan Böri Shad Heraclius |
The Third Perso-Turkic War was the third and final conflict between the Sasanian Empire and the Western Turkic Khaganate. Unlike the previous two wars, it was not fought in Central Asia, but in Transcaucasia. Hostilities were initiated in 627 AD by Tong Yabghu Qaghan of the Western Göktürks and Emperor Heraclius of the Byzantine Empire. Opposing them were the Sassanid Persians, allied with the Avars. The war was fought against the background of the last Byzantine-Sassanid War and served as a prelude to the dramatic events that changed the balance of powers in the Middle East for centuries to come (Battle of Nineveh, Islamic conquest of Persia).
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Third_Perso-Turkic_War
Justinian II | |||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|
Emperor of the Romans | |||||
Byzantine emperor | |||||
1st reign | 10 July 685 – 695 | ||||
Predecessor | Constantine IV | ||||
Successor | Leontius | ||||
2nd reign | 21 August 705 – 4 November 711 | ||||
Predecessor | Tiberius III | ||||
Successor | Philippicus | ||||
Co-emperor | Tiberius (706–711) | ||||
Born | 668 or 669 Constantinople (now Istanbul, Turkey) | ||||
Died | 4 November 711 (aged 42)[b] Damatrys, Opsikion (now Samandıra, Turkey) | ||||
Spouse | Eudokia Theodora of Khazaria | ||||
Issue | Anastasia Tiberius | ||||
| |||||
Dynasty | Heraclian | ||||
Father | Constantine IV | ||||
Mother | Anastasia | ||||
Religion | Chalcedonian Christianity |
Justinian II (Latin: Iustinianus; Greek: Ἰουστινιανός, romanized: Ioustiniānós; 668/69 – 4 November 711), nicknamed "the Slit-Nosed" (Latin: Rhinotmetus; Greek: ὁ Ῥινότμητος, romanized: ho Rhīnótmētos), was the last Byzantine emperor of the Heraclian dynasty, reigning from 685 to 695 and again from 705 to 711. Like his namesake, Justinian I, Justinian II was an ambitious and passionate ruler who was keen to restore the Roman Empire to its former glories. However, he responded brutally to any opposition to his will and lacked the finesse of his father, Constantine IV.[6] Consequently, he generated enormous opposition to his reign, resulting in his deposition in 695 in a popular uprising. He only returned to the throne in 705 with the help of a Bulgar and Slav army. His second reign was even more despotic than the first, and it too saw his eventual overthrow in 711. He was abandoned by his army, who turned on him before killing him.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Justinian_II
Part of a series on the |
Byzantine army |
---|
Structural history |
Campaign history |
Lists of wars, revolts and civil wars, and battles |
Strategy and tactics |
The Hetaireia (Greek: Ἑταιρεία, Latinized as hetaeria) was a term for a corps of bodyguards during the Byzantine Empire.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hetaireia
Yazid ibn Asid ibn Zafir al-Sulami | |
---|---|
Died | after 779/780 |
Allegiance | Abbasid Caliphate |
Years of service | ca. 750 – ca.780 |
Wars | Arab–Khazar wars, Arab–Byzantine wars |
Relations | Asid ibn Zafir al-Sulami (father) |
Yazid ibn Asid ibn Zafir al-Sulami or Yazid ibn Usayd ibn Zafir al-Sulami (Arabic: يزيد بن أسيد السلمي) was an Arab general and governor in the service of the early Abbasid Caliphate. He was active mostly in the Caliphate's northwestern frontier region, serving as governor of Arminiya and the Jazira and fighting against the Byzantine Empire and the Khazars.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Yazid_ibn_Asid_ibn_Zafir_al-Sulami
The South Caucasus, also known as Transcaucasia or the Transcaucasus, is a geographical region on the border of Eastern Europe and Western Asia, straddling the southern Caucasus Mountains.[1][2] The South Caucasus roughly corresponds to modern Armenia, Georgia, and Azerbaijan, which are sometimes collectively known as the Caucasian States. The total area of these countries measures about 186,100 square kilometres (71,850 square miles).[3] The South Caucasus and the North Caucasus together comprise the larger Caucasus geographical region that divides Eurasia.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/South_Caucasus
Kars oblast
Карсская область | |
---|---|
Country | Russian Empire |
Viceroyalty | Caucasus |
Established | 1878 |
Treaty of Brest-Litovsk | 3 March 1918 |
Capital | Kars |
Area | |
• Total | 18,739.50 km2 (7,235.36 sq mi) |
Population (1916) | |
• Total | 364,214 |
• Density | 19/km2 (50/sq mi) |
• Urban | 12.30% |
• Rural | 87.70% |
The Kars oblast[a] was a province (oblast) of the Caucasus Viceroyalty of the Russian Empire between 1878 and 1917. Its capital was the city of Kars, presently in Turkey. The oblast bordered the Ottoman Empire to the west, the Batum Oblast (in 1883–1903 part of the Kutaisi Governorate) to the north, the Tiflis Governorate to the northeast, and the Erivan Governorate to the east. The Kars oblast included parts of the contemporary provinces of Kars, Ardahan, and Erzurum Province of Turkey, and the Amasia Community of the Shirak Province of Armenia.[1]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kars_oblast
Eyālet-i Čildir | |||||||||||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
Eyalet of the Ottoman Empire | |||||||||||||||
1578–1845 | |||||||||||||||
The Childir Eyalet in 1609 | |||||||||||||||
Capital | Çıldır 1578-1628; Ahıska 1628-1829 Oltu 1829-1845 | ||||||||||||||
History | |||||||||||||||
History | |||||||||||||||
• Battle of Çıldır | 1578 | ||||||||||||||
• Disestablished | 1845 | ||||||||||||||
| |||||||||||||||
Today part of | Georgia Turkey |
The Eyalet of Childir[1] (Ottoman Turkish: ایالت ایالت چلدر; Eyālet-i Çıldır)[2] or Akhalzik[3][nb 1] was an eyalet of the Ottoman Empire in the Southwestern Caucasus. The area of the former Çıldır Eyalet is now divided between Samtskhe-Javakheti and the Autonomous Republic of Adjara in Georgia and provinces of Artvin, Ardahan and Erzurum in Turkey. The administrative center was Çıldır between 1578 and 1628, Ahıska between 1628 and 1829, and Oltu between 1829 and 1845.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Childir_Eyalet
Erzurum Eyalet | |||||||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
Eyalet of the Ottoman Empire | |||||||||||
1533–1867 | |||||||||||
The Erzurum Eyalet in 1609 | |||||||||||
Capital | Erzurum[1] | ||||||||||
History | |||||||||||
History | |||||||||||
• Established | 1533 | ||||||||||
• Disestablished | 1867 | ||||||||||
| |||||||||||
Today part of | Turkey |
The Erzurum Eyalet (Ottoman Turkish: ایالت ارضروم, romanized: Eyālet-i Erżurūm)[2] was an eyalet of the Ottoman Empire. It was established after the conquest of Western Armenia by the Ottoman Empire. Its reported area in the 19th century was 11,463 square miles (29,690 km2).[3]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Erzurum_Eyalet
With the incorporation of the region into Russian Empire, between 1879–1882 more than 110,000 people from the Kars oblast and 30,000 from the Batum oblast migrated to the new borders of the Ottoman Empire,[4] about 80% were Muslim.[5] In their stead, Christian settlers, mostly consisting of Armenians, Greeks and Russians,[2] were settled throughout the province. The Armenians, who eventually came to form the largest ethnic group in the region were largely composed of immigrants from the Six Vilayets escaping persecution in the Ottoman Empire.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kars_oblast
Six Vilayets ولايت سته | |
---|---|
Vilayets of Ottoman Empire | |
The six Armenian provinces in early 20th century. | |
History | |
Today part of | Turkey |
The Six Vilayets (Ottoman Turkish: ولايت سته, Vilâyat-ı Sitte), the Six Provinces, or the Six Armenian Vilayets (Armenian: Վեց հայկական վիլայեթներ Vets' haykakan vilayet'ner; Turkish: Altı vilayet, Altı il[1]) were the main Armenian-populated vilayets ("provinces") of the Ottoman Empire. These were Van, Erzurum, Mamuret-ul-Aziz, Bitlis, Diyarbekir and Sivas.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Six_Vilayets
This article's lead section may be too short to adequately summarize the key points. (September 2021) |
Total population | |
---|---|
2 to 3 million[2] | |
Regions with significant populations | |
Turkey Diaspora: Approx. 300,000[3] Australia, Austria, Belgium, France, Germany, Netherlands, Sweden, Switzerland, United Kingdom, United States[4][5] | |
Languages | |
Zaza, Kurmanji Kurdish,[4] and Turkish | |
Religion | |
Predominantly Sunni Islam (mostly Shafiʽi school but also Hanafism) significant minority Alevism[6] |
The Zazas (also known as Kird, Kirmanc or Dimili)[7] are a people in eastern Turkey who traditionally speak the Zaza language, a western Iranian language written in the Latin script. Their heartland consists of Tunceli and Bingöl provinces and parts of Elazığ, Erzincan and Diyarbakır provinces.[3] Zazas generally[8] consider themselves Kurds,[9][6][10][11] and are often described as Zaza Kurds by scholars.[7][12][13][14][15]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Zazas
According to Encyclopædia Iranica the endonym Dimlī or Dīmla was derived from Daylam region in Northern Iran, and appears in Armenian historical records as delmik, dlmik, which was proposed to be derived from Middle Iranian *dēlmīk meaning Daylamite. Among their neighbors the people are known mainly as Zāzā, which meant “stutterer” and was used as a pejorative. Hadank and Mckenzie attribute relative abundance of sibilants and affricates in Zaza language to explain the semantic etymology of the name.[3]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Zazas
History of Armenia |
---|
|
|
|
|
|
Timeline • Origins • Etymology |
Russian Armenia is the period of Armenian history under Russian rule from 1828, when Eastern Armenia became part of the Russian Empire following Qajar Iran's loss in the Russo-Persian War (1826–1828) and the subsequent ceding of its territories that included Eastern Armenia per the out coming Treaty of Turkmenchay of 1828.[1]
Eastern Armenia remained part of the Russian Empire until its collapse in 1917.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Russian_Armenia
Armenian genocide | |
---|---|
Part of World War I | |
Location | Ottoman Empire |
Date | 1915–1917[1][2] |
Target | Ottoman Armenians |
Attack type | Genocide, death march, forced Islamization |
Deaths | 600,000–1.5 million[3] |
Perpetrators | Committee of Union and Progress |
Trials | Ottoman Special Military Tribunal |
The Armenian genocide[a] was the systematic destruction of the Armenian people and identity in the Ottoman Empire during World War I. Spearheaded by the ruling Committee of Union and Progress (CUP), it was implemented primarily through the mass murder of around one million Armenians during death marches to the Syrian Desert and the forced Islamization of others, primarily women and children.
Before World War I, Armenians occupied a somewhat protected, but subordinate, place in Ottoman society. Large-scale massacres of Armenians had occurred in the 1890s and 1909. The Ottoman Empire suffered a series of military defeats and territorial losses—especially during the 1912–1913 Balkan Wars—leading to fear among CUP leaders that the Armenians would seek independence. During their invasion of Russian and Persian territory in 1914, Ottoman paramilitaries massacred local Armenians. Ottoman leaders took isolated instances of Armenian resistance as evidence of a widespread rebellion, though no such rebellion existed. Mass deportation was intended to permanently forestall the possibility of Armenian autonomy or independence.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Armenian_genocide
Sublime Ottoman State
| |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
c. 1299–1922 | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Motto:
| |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Anthem: various[2][3] | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Status | Empire | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Capital | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Common languages | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Religion | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Demonym(s) | Ottoman | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Government |
| ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Sultan | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• c. 1299–1323/4 (first) | Osman I | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• 1918–1922 (last) | Mehmed VI | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Caliph | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• 1517–1520 (first) | Selim I[18][g] | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• 1922–1924 (last) | Abdulmejid II | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Grand Vizier | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• 1320–1331 (first) | Alaeddin Pasha | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• 1920–1922 (last) | Ahmet Tevfik Pasha | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Legislature | Imperial Council (until 1876; 1878–1908)General Assembly (1876–1878; 1908–1920)None, rule by decree (1920–1922) | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• Unelected upper house | Chamber of Notables (1876–1878; 1908–1920) | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• Elected lower house | Chamber of Deputies (1876–1878; 1908–1920) | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
History | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• Founded | c. 1299[19] | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
1402–1413 | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
29 May 1453 | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
1876–1878 | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
1908–1920 | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
23 January 1913 | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
1 November 1922 | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• Republic of Turkey established[i] | 29 October 1923 | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
3 March 1924 | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Area | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
1481[20] | 1,220,000 km2 (470,000 sq mi) | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
1521[20] | 3,400,000 km2 (1,300,000 sq mi) | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
1683[20][21] | 5,200,000 km2 (2,000,000 sq mi) | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
1913[20] | 2,550,000 km2 (980,000 sq mi) | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Population | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
• 1912[22] | 24,000,000 | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
Currency | Various: akçe, para, sultani, kuruş (piastre), pound | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
|
History of Turkey |
---|
Timeline |
Turkey portal |
The Ottoman Empire,[k] historically and colloquially the Turkish Empire,[24] was an empire[l] that controlled much of Southeast Europe, Western Asia, and Northern Africa between the 14th and early 20th centuries. It was founded at the end of the 13th century in northwestern Anatolia in the town of Söğüt (modern-day Bilecik Province) by the Turkoman[25] tribal leader Osman I.[26] After 1354, the Ottomans crossed into Europe and, with the conquest of the Balkans, the Ottoman beylik was transformed into a transcontinental empire. The Ottomans ended the Byzantine Empire with the conquest of Constantinople in 1453 by Mehmed the Conqueror.[27]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ottoman_Empire
Bitlis
Baghesh • Բաղեշ | |
---|---|
Coordinates: 38°24′00″N 42°06′30″ECoordinates: 38°24′00″N 42°06′30″E | |
Country | Turkey |
Province | Bitlis |
District | Bitlis |
Government | |
• Mayor | Nesrullah Tanğlay (AKP) |
Elevation | 1,545 m (5,069 ft) |
Population (2021)[1] | 53,023 |
Time zone | TRT (UTC+3) |
Postal code | 13000 |
Website | bitlis |
Bitlis (Armenian: Բաղեշ, romanized: Baghesh or Paghesh;[2] Kurdish: Bidlîs;[3]) is a city in southeastern Turkey. It is the seat of Bitlis District and Bitlis Province.[4] Its population is 53,023 (2021).[1] The city is located at an elevation of 1,545 metres, 15 km from Lake Van, in the steep-sided valley of the Bitlis River, a tributary of the Tigris. The local economy is mainly based on agricultural products which include fruits, grain and tobacco. Industry is fairly limited, and deals mainly with leatherworking, manufacture of tobacco products as well as weaving and dyeing of coarse cloth. Bitlis is connected to other urban centres by road, including Tatvan on Lake Van, 25 km to the northeast, and the cities of Muş (Mush), 100 km northwest, and Diyarbakır, 200 km to the west. The climate of Bitlis can be harsh, with long winters and heavy snowfalls. Summers are hot, and often humid. Since the local elections of March 2019, the Mayor of Bitlis is Nesrullah Tanğlay.[5]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Bitlis
Malatya | |
---|---|
Coordinates: 38°20′55″N 38°19′10″ECoordinates: 38°20′55″N 38°19′10″E | |
Country | Turkey |
Region | Eastern Anatolia |
Province | Malatya |
Government | |
• Mayor | Selahattin Gürkan (AK Party) |
Area | |
• District | 922.16 km2 (356.05 sq mi) |
Elevation | 954 m (3,130 ft) |
Population | |
• District | 806,156 |
• District density | 870/km2 (2,300/sq mi) |
Time zone | UTC+3 (TRT) |
Postal code | 44xxx |
Area code | 0422 |
Licence plate | 44 |
Website | www.malatya.gov.tr |
Malatya (Armenian: Մալաթիա, romanized: Malat'ya; Syriac ܡܠܝܛܝܢܐ Malīṭīná; Kurdish: Meletî;[3] Ancient Greek: Μελιτηνή) is a large city in the Eastern Anatolia region of Turkey and the capital of Malatya Province. The city has been a human settlement for thousands of years.
In Hittite, melid or milit means "honey", offering a possible etymology for the name, which was mentioned in the contemporary sources of the time under several variations (e.g., Hittite: Malidiya[4] and possibly also Midduwa;[5] Akkadian: Meliddu;[6] Urar̩tian: Meliṭeia[6]).
Strabo says that the city was known "to the ancients"[7] as Melitene (Ancient Greek Μελιτηνή), a name adopted by the Romans following Roman expansion into the east. According to Strabo, the inhabitants of Melitene shared with the nearby Cappadocians and Cataonians the same language and culture.
The site of ancient Melitene lies a few kilometres from the modern city in what is now the village of Arslantepe and near the district center of Battalgazi (Byzantine to Ottoman Empire). Present-day Battalgazi was the location of the city of Malatya until the 19th century, when a gradual move of the city to the present third location began. Battalgazi's official name was Eskimalatya (Old Malatya); until recently, it was a name used locally. In Turkey the city is renowned for its apricots, as up to 80% of the Turkish apricot production is provided by Malatya, giving Malatya the name kayısı diyarı ("apricot realm").[8]
In February 2023, the city suffered huge damage as a result of the Turkey–Syria earthquake.[4]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Malatya
Arslantepe has been inhabited since the development of agriculture in the Fertile Crescent, nearly 6,000 years ago. From the Bronze Age, the site became an administrative center of a larger region in the kingdom of Isuwa. The city was heavily fortified. The Hittites conquered the city in the fourteenth century B.C. In the Hittite language, melid or milit means "honey." The name was mentioned in the contemporary sources under several variations (e.g., Hittite: Malidiya[9] and possibly also Midduwa;[10] Akkadian: Meliddu;[6] Urar̩tian: Meliṭeia[6]).
After the end of the Hittite Empire, the city became the center of the Neo-Hittite state of Kammanu. The city continued old Hittite traditions and styles. Researchers have discovered a palace inside the city walls with statues and reliefs. A palace was erected with monumental stone sculptures of lions and the ruler. Kammanu was a vassal state of Urartu between 804 and 743.
According to Igor Diakonoff and John Greppin, there was likely an Armenian presence in Melid by 1200 BCE.[11]
The Neo-Assyrian king Tiglath-Pileser I (1115–1077 B.C.) forced the kingdom of Malidiya to pay tribute to Assyria. The Neo-Assyrian king Sargon II (722–705) sacked the city in 712 BC. At the same time, the Cimmerians and Scythians invaded Anatolia and the city declined. Some occupation continued on the site into the Hellenistic and Roman periods—a smithy with four ovens has been excavated from the Roman period. There was a long gap in occupation between the mid-7th century and renewed use of the site in the late 12th or early 13th century.[12]
Archeologists first began to excavate the site of Arslantepe in the 1930s, led by French archaeologist Louis Delaporte. Since 1961 an Italian team of archaeologists, led by Marcella Frangipane in the early 21st century, has been working at the site.
From the 6th century BC, Melid was ruled by the Armenian Orontid Dynasty, who were subjects of the Achaemenid Empire. After periods of Achaemenid and Macedonian rule, Melid (Malatya) was part of the Kingdom of Lesser Armenia.
Bronze Age swords from Arslantepe, c.3000 BCE, in the Malatya Museumhttps://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Malatya
Ariarathes V "Father-Loving" | |
---|---|
King of Cappadocia | |
Reign | 163–130 BC |
Predecessor | Ariarathes IV |
Successor | Ariarathes VI |
Born | Cappadocia |
Died | circ. 130 BC Cappadocia |
Spouse | Nysa of Cappadocia |
Issue | Ariarathes VI 5 other unnamed children |
Greek | Λευκών |
Father | Ariarathes IV |
Mother | Antiochis |
Religion | Greek Polytheism |
O: Diademed head of Ariarathes V | R: Athena holding Nike with wreath and resting hand on grounded shield, spear behind; ΒΑΣΙΛΕΩΣ / ΑΡΙΑΡΑΘΟΥ / ΕΥΣΕΒΟΥΣ; monograms in field |
Silver tetradrachm struck in Eusebia 133 BC; ref.: Simonetta 2 [1];
Λ in exergue is a greek numeral and means 30th year of reign |
Ariarathes V Eusebes Philopator (Greek: Ἀριαράθης Εὐσεβής Φιλοπάτωρ; reigned 163–130 BC) was a son of the preceding king Ariarathes IV of Cappadocia and queen Antiochis. He was distinguished by his contemporaries for his excellence of his character and his cultivation of philosophy and the liberal arts and is considered by some historians to have been the greatest of the kings of Cappadocia.[1]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ariarathes_V_of_Cappadocia
Yeni Cami is an example of Byzantine influence on Ottoman architecture See Pammakaristos Churchhttps://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Malatya
Siirt | |
---|---|
Coordinates: 37°55′30″N 41°56′45″ECoordinates: 37°55′30″N 41°56′45″E | |
Country | Turkey |
Province | Siirt |
District | Siirt |
Government | |
• Elected Mayor | Berivan Helen Işık (deposed) (HDP) |
Population (2021)[1] | 160,340 |
Time zone | TRT (UTC+3) |
Website | www.siirt.bel.tr |
Siirt (Arabic: سِعِرْد, romanized: Siʿird; Armenian: Սղերդ, romanized: S'gherd;[citation needed] Syriac: ܣܥܪܬ, romanized: Siirt;[2] Kurdish: Sêrt[3]) is a city in the Siirt District of Siirt Province in Turkey.[4] It had a population of 160,340 in 2021.[1]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Siirt
Hakkâri | |
---|---|
Coordinates: 37.577°N 43.739°ECoordinates: 37.577°N 43.739°E | |
Country | Turkey |
Province | Hakkâri |
District | Hakkâri |
Population (2022)[1] | 60,098 |
Time zone | TRT (UTC+3) |
Hakkâri (Turkish pronunciation: [hacːaːɾi]; Kurdish: Colemêrg[2]), formerly known as Julamerk,[3] (Turkish: Çölemerik) is a city and the seat of Hakkâri District in the Hakkâri Province of Turkey.[4] The city is populated by Kurds and had a population of 60,098 in 2022.[1][5]
It is located about 40 kilometres from the Iraq–Turkey border, but the distance to the nearest Iraqi border crossing (Ibrahim Khalil Border Crossing) by road is about 270 km.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hakk%C3%A2ri_(city)
Hokkaidō
北海道 | |
---|---|
Prefecture and Region | |
Japanese transcription(s) | |
• Japanese | 北海道 |
• Rōmaji | Hokkaidō |
Anthem: Hikari afurete, Mukashi no mukashi and Hokkai bayashi | |
Coordinates: 43°N 142°ECoordinates: 43°N 142°E | |
Country | Japan |
Region | Hokkaidō |
Island | Hokkaidō |
Capital | Sapporo |
Largest city | Sapporo |
Subdivisions | Districts: 74, Municipalities: 179 |
Government | |
• Governor | Naomichi Suzuki |
Area | |
• Total | 83,423.84 km2 (32,210.12 sq mi) |
• Rank | 1st |
Population (May 31, 2019) | |
• Total | 5,281,297 |
• Rank | 8th |
• Density | 63/km2 (160/sq mi) |
ISO 3166 code | JP-01 |
Website | www |
Symbols of Japan | |
Bird | Tanchō (red-crowned crane, Grus japonensis) |
Flower | Hamanasu (rugosa rose, Rosa rugosa) |
Mascot | Kyun-chan (キュンちゃん) |
Tree | Ezomatsu (Jezo spruce, Picea jezoensis) |
Hokkaido (Japanese: 北海道, Hepburn: Hokkaidō, pronounced [hokkaꜜidoː] (listen); lit. 'Northern Sea Circuit') is Japan's second largest island and comprises the largest and northernmost prefecture, making up its own region.[1] The Tsugaru Strait separates Hokkaidō from Honshu; the two islands are connected by the undersea railway Seikan Tunnel.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hokkaido
Urartian | |
---|---|
Vannic | |
Native to | Armenian Highlands |
Region | Urartu |
Era | attested 9th–6th century BCE |
Hurro-Urartian
| |
Neo-Assyrian cuneiform | |
Language codes | |
ISO 639-3 | xur |
xur | |
Glottolog | urar1245 |
Urartian or Vannic is an extinct Hurro-Urartian language which was spoken by the inhabitants of the ancient kingdom of Urartu (Biaini or Biainili in Urartian), which was centered on the region around Lake Van and had its capital, Tushpa, near the site of the modern town of Van in the Armenian highlands (now in the Eastern Anatolia region of Turkey).[1] Its past prevalence is unknown. While some believe it was probably dominant around Lake Van and in the areas along the upper Zab valley,[2] others believe it was spoken by a relatively small population who comprised a ruling class.[3]
First attested in the 9th century BCE, Urartian ceased to be written after the fall of the Urartian state in 585 BCE and presumably became extinct due to the fall of Urartu.[4] It must have had long contact with, and been gradually totally replaced by, an early form of Armenian,[5][6][7] although it is only in the 5th century CE that the first written examples of Armenian appear.[8]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Urartian_language
پارسیها/فارسی/ایرانی | |
---|---|
Total population | |
c. 60+ million[1] | |
Regions with significant populations | |
Iran | 51–65%[2][3][4] (also including Gilaks and Mazanderanis)[2] of the total population |
Languages | |
Persian, other Iranian languages | |
Religion | |
Majority: Shia Islam Minority: Zoroastrianism, Christianity, Baháʼí Faith, Sunni Islam, and various others[5] | |
Related ethnic groups | |
Other Iranian peoples |
The Persians are an Iranian ethnic group who comprise over half of the population of Iran.[4] They share a common cultural system and are native speakers of the Persian language[6][7][8] as well as of the languages that are closely related to Persian.[9]
The ancient Persians were originally an ancient Iranian people who had migrated to the region of Persis (corresponding to the modern-day Iranian province of Fars) by the 9th century BCE.[10][11] Together with their compatriot allies, they established and ruled some of the world's most powerful empires[12][11] that are well-recognized for their massive cultural, political, and social influence, which covered much of the territory and population of the ancient world.[13][14][15] Throughout history, the Persian people have contributed greatly to art and science.[16][17][18] Persian literature is one of the world's most prominent literary traditions.[19]
In contemporary terminology, people from Afghanistan, Tajikistan, and Uzbekistan who natively speak the Persian language are known as Tajiks, with the former two countries having their own dialects of Persian known as Dari and Tajiki, respectively; whereas those in the Caucasus (primarily in the present-day Republic of Azerbaijan and Dagestan, Russia), albeit heavily assimilated, are known as Tats.[20][21] Historically, however, the terms Tajik and Tat were used synonymously and interchangeably with Persian.[20] Many influential Persian figures hailed from outside of Iran's present-day borders—to the northeast in Afghanistan and Central Asia, and to a lesser extent within the Caucasus proper to the northwest.[22][23] In historical contexts, especially in English, "Persian" may be defined more loosely (often as a national identity) to cover all subjects of the ancient Persian polities, regardless of their ethnic background.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Persians
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kars_oblast
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Romani_people
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kurds
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Circassians
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kabardians
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Adjarians
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Georgians
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Lezgins
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Polish_language
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Jewish_languages
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ossetian_language
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Avar_language
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Dargin_languages
Dargin | |
---|---|
Region | Southcentral Dagestan[1] |
Native speakers | 490,000 (2010 census)[1] |
Northeast Caucasian
| |
Dialects | |
Language codes | |
ISO 639-2 | dar |
ISO 639-3 | dar |
Glottolog | darg1242 |
Dargin |
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Dargin_languages
Shahrisabz
Шаҳрисабз | |
---|---|
City | |
Coordinates: 39°03′N 66°50′ECoordinates: 39°03′N 66°50′E | |
Country | Uzbekistan |
Region | Qashqadaryo Region |
Population (2022)[1] | |
• Total | 142,700 |
Time zone | UTC+5 |
Official name | Historic Centre of Shakhrisyabz |
Criteria | Cultural: (iii), (iv) |
Designated | 2000 (24th session) |
Reference no. | 885 |
Endangered | 2016– |
Shakhrisabz (Uzbek: Шаҳрисабз Shahrisabz; Tajik: Шаҳрисабз; Persian: شهر سبز, romanized: shahr-e sabz: "city of green" / "verdant city"; Russian: Шахрисабз) is a district-level city in Qashqadaryo Region in southern Uzbekistan.[2] The Economic Cooperation Organization (ECO) has selected Shakhrisabz as its tourism capital for 2024.[3]
It is located approximately 80 km south of Samarkand, at an altitude of 622 m. Its population is 140,500 (2021).[1] Historically known as Kesh or Kish, Shahrisabz was once a major city of Central Asia and was an important urban center of Sogdiana, a province of the Achaemenid Empire of Persia. It is primarily known today as the birthplace of 14th-century Turco-Mongol conqueror Timur.[4]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Shahrisabz
The Illyro-Roman Wars were a series of wars fought between the Roman Republic and the Ardiaei kingdom. In the First Illyrian War, which lasted from 229 BC to 228 BC,[1] Rome's concern was that the trade across the Adriatic Sea increased after the First Punic War at a time when Ardiaei power increased under queen Teuta.[2] Attacks on trading vessels of Rome's Italic allies by Illyrian pirates and the death of a Roman envoy named Coruncanius[3] on Teuta's orders,[4] prompted the Roman senate to dispatch a Roman army under the command of the consuls Lucius Postumius Albinus and Gnaeus Fulvius Centumalus. Rome expelled Illyrian garrisons from a number of Greek cities including Epidamnus, Apollonia, Corcyra, Pharos and established a protectorate over these Greek towns. The Romans also set up[5] Demetrius of Pharos as a power in Illyria to counterbalance the power of Teuta.[6]
The Second Illyrian War lasted from 220 BC to 219 BC. In 219 BC, the Roman Republic was at war with the Celts of Cisalpine Gaul, and the Second Punic War with Carthage[7] was beginning. These distractions gave Demetrius the time he needed to build a new Illyrian war fleet. Leading this fleet of 90 ships, Demetrius sailed south of Lissus, violating his earlier treaty and starting the war.[8] Demetrius' fleet first attacked Pylos, where he captured 50 ships after several attempts. From Pylos, the fleet sailed to the Cyclades, quelling any resistance that they found on the way. Demetrius foolishly sent a fleet across the Adriatic, and, with the Illyrian forces divided, the fortified[9] city of Dimale[10] was captured by the Roman fleet under Lucius Aemilius Paulus.[11] From Dimale the navy went towards Pharos.[12] The forces of Rome routed the Illyrians and Demetrius fled to Macedon, where he became a trusted councillor at the court of Philip V of Macedon, and remained there until his death at Messene in 214 BC.[13]
In 171 BC, the Illyrian king Gentius was allied with the Romans against the Macedonians. But in 169 BC he changed sides and allied himself with Perseus of Macedon. During the Third Illyrian War, in 168 BC, he arrested two Roman legati and destroyed the cities of Apollonia and Dyrrhachium, which were allied to Rome. He was defeated at Scodra by a Roman force under L. Anicius Gallus,[14] and in 167 BC he was brought to Rome as a captive to participate in Gallus' triumph, after which he was interned at Iguvium.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Illyro-Roman_Wars
Alliance with Dardania and Macedonia
In 169 BC, Gentius arranged the murder of his brother, Plator, because Plator's plan to marry Etuta, daughter of the Dardanian king, Monunius II of Dardania, would have made him too powerful. Gentius then married Plator's fiancée for himself, securing the alliance of the powerful Dardanian State.
Perseus of Macedon, having recaptured several Roman outposts in Roman occupied Illyria, controlled the route leading west to the Ardiaean State. At this point, Perseus sent his first embassy to Gentius, consisting of the Illyrian exile Pleuratus, for his command of the Illyrian language, and the Macedonians Adaeus and Beroea. They found Gentius at Lissus and informed him of Perseus' successes against the Romans and Dardanians and his recent victory against the Penestae. Gentius replied that he lacked not the will to fight the Romans, but only the money. No promises were made on this point either by this embassy or another sent from Stuberra shortly afterwards. Perseus continued his efforts to involve Gentius in the war—preferably, it was said, at no cost to his treasury. The Illyrian exile Pleuratus raised 1,000 infantry and 200 cavalry from the Penestae. The Roman invasion of Macedonia in 168 BC forced the king to promise a subsidy to Gentius, whose ships might be employed to attack the Romans. A sum of 300 talents was mentioned and Perseus sent his companion Pantauchus to make the arrangements. In the city of Meteon, hostages were agreed and Gentius accepted the oath of the king. He sent Olympio with a delegation to Perseus to collect the money, and the treaty was concluded with some ceremony at Dium on the Thermaic Gulf. A formal parade of the Macedonian cavalry was held, which may have impressed the Illyrians; the cavalry may have represented the Macedonians in the ratification of the treaty.
The 300 talents were counted out of the royal treasure at Pella and the Illyrians were permitted to mark it with their own stamp. An advance of this money was forwarded to Gentius; and when this was passed over by Pantauchus, the king was urged to commence hostilities against the Romans. When Gentius imprisoned two Roman envoys sent by Appius Claudius at Lychnidus, Perseus recalled the rest of the subsidy in the belief that Gentius was now his ally, come what may.[53]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Illyro-Roman_Wars#Alliance_with_Dardania_and_Macedonia
Polybius (2.8) furnishes a suspiciously vivid account of a Roman embassy to Teuta, a version of events that was intended to justify the Roman invasion of Illyria.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Illyro-Roman_Wars#Alliance_with_Dardania_and_Macedonia
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Category:3rd_century_BC
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Battle_of_Paxos
lhaq (rus. Илхак uzb. Ilhaq) is a 2020 Uzbek military drama directed and written by Jahongir Akhmedov. The Film Agency of Uzbekistan acted as the general producer of the film. The film is the first joint project with the "Belarusfilm" studio.[2] According to the creators of the film, the script is based on the work of Zulfiya Zokirova "Life".[3] The picture tells about the resilience of a mother who lost five children during the Great Patriotic War. Starring Dilorom Karimova, Tahir Saidov, Dilrabo Mirzayeva Fotik Nasimov and Husan Rashidov. The tape was released on May 9, 2020.[4]
The premiere of the film "Ilhak", based on the events of life, is dedicated to the 75th anniversary of the Great Patriotic War, took place on May 9, 2020, on all TV channels of Uzbekistan, including «Sevimli TV», «MY5», «Zoʻr TV», «Milliy TV».[5] The film was the first in Uzbekistan to be released in theaters after restrictions due to the COVID-19 pandemic.[6]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ilhaq
Sparta[1] was a prominent city-state in Laconia in ancient Greece. In antiquity, the city-state was known as Lacedaemon (Λακεδαίμων, Lakedaímōn), while the name Sparta referred to its main settlement on the banks of the Eurotas River in Laconia, in south-eastern Peloponnese.[2] Around 650 BC, it rose to become the dominant military land-power in ancient Greece.
Given its military pre-eminence, Sparta was recognized as the leading force of the unified Greek military during the Greco-Persian Wars, in rivalry with the rising naval power of Athens.[3] Sparta was the principal enemy of Athens during the Peloponnesian War (431–404 BC),[4] from which it emerged victorious after the Battle of Aegospotami. The decisive Battle of Leuctra in 371 BC ended the Spartan hegemony, although the city-state maintained its political independence until its forced integration into the Achaean League in 192 BC. The city nevertheless recovered much autonomy after the Roman conquest of Greece in 146 BC and prospered during the Roman Empire, as its antiquarian customs attracted many Roman tourists. However, Sparta was sacked in 396 AD by the Visigothic king Alaric, and underwent a long period of decline, especially in the Middle Ages, when many of its citizens moved to Mystras. Modern Sparta is the capital of the southern Greek region of Laconia and a center for processing citrus and olives.
Sparta was unique in ancient Greece for its social system and constitution, which were supposedly introduced by the semi-mythical legislator Lycurgus. His laws configured the Spartan society to maximize military proficiency at all costs, focusing all social institutions on military training and physical development. The inhabitants of Sparta were stratified as Spartiates (citizens with full rights), mothakes (free non-Spartiate people descended from Spartans), perioikoi (free non-Spartiates), and helots (state-owned enslaved non-Spartan locals). Spartiate men underwent the rigorous agoge training regimen, and Spartan phalanx brigades were widely considered to be among the best in battle. Spartan women enjoyed considerably more rights than elsewhere in classical antiquity.
Sparta was frequently a subject of fascination in its own day, as well as in Western culture following the revival of classical learning. The admiration of Sparta is known as Laconophilia. Bertrand Russell wrote:
Sparta had a double effect on Greek thought: through the reality, and through the myth.... The reality enabled the Spartans to defeat Athens in war; the myth influenced Plato's political theory, and that of countless subsequent writers.... [The] ideals that it favors had a great part in framing the doctrines of Rousseau, Nietzsche, and National Socialism.[5]
Names
The earliest attested term referring to Lacedaemon is the Mycenaean Greek 𐀨𐀐𐀅𐀖𐀛𐀍, ra-ke-da-mi-ni-jo, "Lakedaimonian", written in Linear B syllabic script,[6][n 1] the equivalent of the later Greek Λακεδαιμόνιος, Lakedaimonios (Latin: Lacedaemonius).[12][13]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Sparta
Prussia | |
---|---|
1525–1947[a] | |
Motto: Gott mit uns Nobiscum deus ("God with us") | |
Anthem: (1820–1830) Borussia "Prussia" (1830–1840) Preußenlied "Song of Prussia" | |
Capital | Königsberg (1525–1701; 1806)
Berlin (1701–1806; 1806–1947) |
Common languages | Official: German |
Minorities: | |
Religion | Religious confessions in the Kingdom of Prussia 1880 Majority: 64.64% United Protestant (Lutheran, Calvinist) Minorities: 33.75% Catholic 1.33% Jewish 0.19% Other Christian 0.09% Other |
---|---|
Demonym(s) | Prussian |
Government | Feudal monarchy (1525–1701) Absolute monarchy (1701–1848) Federal parliamentary semi-constitutional monarchy (1848–1918) Federal semi-presidential constitutional republic (1918–1932) Authoritarian presidential republic (1932–1933) Nazi single-party dictatorship (1933–1945) Allied-occupied Germany (1945–1947) |
Duke1 | |
• 1525–1568 | Albert I (first) |
• 1688–1701 | Frederick I (last) |
King1 | |
• 1701–1713 | Frederick I (first) |
• 1888–1918 | Wilhelm II (last) |
Minister-President1, 2 | |
• 1918 | Friedrich Ebert (first) |
• 1933–1945 | Hermann Göring (last) |
Historical era | Early modern Europe to Contemporary |
10 April 1525 | |
27 August 1618 | |
18 January 1701 | |
9 November 1918 | |
30 January 1934 | |
25 February 1947[a] | |
Population | |
• 1816[2] | 10,349,000 |
• 1871[2] | 24,689,000 |
• 1939[2] | 41,915,040 |
Currency | Reichsthaler (until 1750) Prussian thaler (1750–1857) Vereinsthaler (1857–1873) German gold mark (1873–1914) German Papiermark (1914–1923) Reichsmark (1924–1947) |
|
Prussia (/ˈprʌʃə/; German: Preußen, pronounced [ˈpʁɔʏsn̩] (listen), Old Prussian: Prūsa or Prūsija) was a German state located on the southeast coast of the Baltic Sea. It formed the German Empire when it united the German states in 1871. It was de facto dissolved by an emergency decree transferring powers of the Prussian government to German Chancellor Franz von Papen in 1932 and de jure by an Allied decree in 1947. For centuries, the House of Hohenzollern ruled Prussia, expanding its size with the Prussian Army. Prussia, with its capital at Königsberg and then, when it became the Kingdom of Prussia in 1701, Berlin, decisively shaped the history of Germany.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Prussia
Spanish language |
---|
Overview |
History |
Grammar |
Dialects |
Dialectology |
Interlanguages |
Teaching |
In Spanish grammar, voseo (Spanish pronunciation: [boˈse.o]) is the use of vos as a second-person singular pronoun, along with its associated verbal forms, in certain regions where the language is spoken. In those regions it replaces tuteo, i.e. the use of the pronoun tú and its verbal forms. Voseo can also be found in the context of using verb conjugations for vos with tú as the subject pronoun (verbal voseo),[1] as in the case of Chilean Spanish, where this form coexists with the ordinary form of voseo.[citation needed]
In all regions with voseo, the corresponding unstressed object pronoun is te and the corresponding possessive is tu / tuyo.[2]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Voseo
Bombyliidae Temporal range:
| |
---|---|
Bombylius major | |
Scientific classification | |
Kingdom: | Animalia |
Phylum: | Arthropoda |
Class: | Insecta |
Order: | Diptera |
Superfamily: | Asiloidea |
Family: | Bombyliidae Latreille, 1802 |
Subfamilies | |
| |
Synonyms | |
Phthiriidae |
The Bombyliidae are a family of flies, commonly known as bee flies. Adults generally feed on nectar and pollen, some being important pollinators. Larvae are mostly parasitoids of other insects.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Bombyliidae
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Stinging_plant#Plants_with_stinging_hairs
Ussingite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Phyllosilicate minerals |
Formula (repeating unit) | Na2AlSi3O8OH |
IMA symbol | Usg[1] |
Strunz classification | 9.EH.20 |
Crystal system | Triclinic |
Crystal class | Pinacoidal (1) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | P1 |
Identification | |
Color | pale to medium violet, reddish violet; sometimes barely tinted purple |
Fracture | irregular/ uneven |
Tenacity | brittle |
Mohs scale hardness | 6-7 |
Luster | sub-vitreous |
Streak | white |
Diaphaneity | transparent, translucent |
References | [2][3] |
Ussingite is a silicate mineral with formula Na2AlSi3O8(OH).[4]
It was named for Niels Viggo Ussing (1864–1911), Copenhagen, Denmark.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ussingite
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Category:Triclinic_minerals
Bultfonteinite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Nesosilicates |
Formula (repeating unit) | Ca2SiO2(OH,F)4 |
IMA symbol | Bul[1] |
Strunz classification | 9.AG.80[2] |
Dana classification | 52.4.7.2[2] |
Crystal system | Triclinic |
Crystal class | Pinacoidal (1) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | P1 |
Unit cell | a = 10.99 Å, b = 8.18 Å c = 5.67 Å, α = 93.95° β = 91.32°, γ = 89.85°;[2] Z = 4 |
Identification | |
Color | Colorless, pink |
Twinning | Interpenetrating on {100} and {010}; polysynthetic |
Cleavage | Good on {100} and {010} |
Fracture | Conchoidal |
Mohs scale hardness | 4.5 |
Luster | Vitreous |
Streak | White[2] |
Diaphaneity | Transparent |
Optical properties | Biaxial (+) |
Refractive index | nα = 1.587 nβ = 1.590 nγ = 1.597[2] |
Birefringence | δ = 0.010[2] |
2V angle | 70° (measured) |
Dispersion | r > v; barely perceptible |
Solubility | Soluble in hydrochloric acid[3] |
References | [4] |
Bultfonteinite, originally dutoitspanite, is a pink to colorless mineral with chemical formula Ca2SiO2(OH,F)4. It was discovered in 1903 or 1904 in the Bultfontein mine in South Africa, for which the mineral is named, and described in 1932.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Bultfonteinite
Babefphite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Phosphate mineral |
Formula (repeating unit) | BaBe(PO4)(F,OH) |
IMA symbol | Bbf[1] |
Strunz classification | 8.BA.15 |
Crystal system | Triclinic[2][3] |
Crystal class | Pedial (1) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | F1 |
Unit cell | a = 6.889 Å, b = 16.814 Å, c = 6.902 Å; α = 90.01°, β = 89.99°, γ = 90.32°; Z = 8[3] |
Identification | |
Color | White |
Crystal habit | As anhedral, equant to flattened grains, to 1.5 mm; may be in aggregates, (pseudotetragonal) |
Tenacity | Brittle |
Mohs scale hardness | 3.5 |
Luster | Vitreous |
Streak | White |
Diaphaneity | Transparent |
Specific gravity | 4.31 |
Optical properties | Uniaxial (+)[4] - biaxial positive (pseudouniaxial)[3] |
Refractive index | nω = 1.629 nε = 1.632 |
Birefringence | 0.003 |
References | [2][4][5][3] |
Babefphite is a rare phosphate mineral with the general formula BaBe(PO4)(F,OH). The name is given for its composition (Ba meaning barium, Be meaning beryllium, F meaning fluorine, and P for phosphorus).[6]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Babefphite
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Phosphate_mineral
Pyromorphite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Phosphate mineral Apatite group |
Formula (repeating unit) | Pb5(PO4)3Cl |
IMA symbol | Pym[1] |
Strunz classification | 8.BN.05 |
Crystal system | Hexagonal |
Crystal class | Dipyramidal (6/m) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | P63/m |
Identification | |
Color | Dark green to grass-green or green, yellow, yellow-orange, reddish orange, yellow-brown, greenish-yellow or yellowish-green, shades of brown, tan, grayish, white and may be colorless; colourless or faintly tinted in transmitted light. |
Crystal habit | Prismatic to acicular crystals, globular to reniform |
Twinning | Rarely on {1122} |
Cleavage | Imperfect- [1011] |
Fracture | Uneven to sub-conchoidal |
Tenacity | Brittle |
Mohs scale hardness | 3.5-4 |
Luster | Resinous to subadamantine |
Streak | White |
Diaphaneity | Transparent to translucent |
Specific gravity | 7.04 measured, 7.14 calculated |
Optical properties | Uniaxial (-) May be anomalously biaxial - |
Refractive index | nω = 2.058 nε = 2.048 |
Birefringence | δ = 0.010 |
Pleochroism | Weak |
Ultraviolet fluorescence | May fluoresce yellow to orange under LW and SW UV |
Other characteristics | Piezoelectric if biaxial |
References | [2][3][4] |
Pyromorphite is a mineral species composed of lead chlorophosphate: Pb5(PO4)3Cl, sometimes occurring in sufficient abundance to be mined as an ore of lead. Crystals are common, and have the form of a hexagonal prism terminated by the basal planes, sometimes combined with narrow faces of a hexagonal pyramid. Crystals with a barrel-like curvature are not uncommon. Globular and reniform masses are also found. It is part of a series with two other minerals: mimetite (Pb5(AsO4)3Cl) and vanadinite (Pb5(VO4)3Cl), the resemblance in external characters is so close that, as a rule, it is only possible to distinguish between them by chemical tests. They were formerly confused under the names green lead ore and brown lead ore (German: Grünbleierz and Braunbleierz).
The phosphate was first distinguished chemically by M. H. Klaproth in 1784,[5][6][7][8] and it was named pyromorphite by J. F. L. Hausmann in 1813.[9][10] The name is derived from the Greek for pyr (fire) and morfe (form) due to its crystallization behavior after being melted.[3]
Paecilomyces javanicus is a mold collected from a lead-polluted soil that is able to form biominerals of pyromorphite.[11]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Pyromorphite
Phosphophyllite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Phosphate minerals |
Formula (repeating unit) | hydrated zinc phosphate (Zn2Fe(PO4)2·4H2O) |
IMA symbol | Pp[1] |
Strunz classification | 8.CA.40 |
Crystal system | Monoclinic |
Crystal class | Prismatic (2/m) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | P21/c |
Identification | |
Formula mass | 448.40 g/mol |
Color | Blue-green to colourless |
Crystal habit | Prismatic |
Twinning | Common |
Cleavage | [100] Perfect, [010] Distinct, [102] Distinct |
Fracture | Conchoidal |
Mohs scale hardness | 3.5 |
Luster | Vitreous |
Streak | White |
Diaphaneity | Transparent |
Specific gravity | 3.1 |
Optical properties | Biaxial (-) |
Refractive index | nα = 1.595 - 1.599, nβ = 1.614 - 1.617, nγ = 1.616 - 1.620 |
Birefringence | 0.021 |
2V angle | Measured 44°, Calculated 34° |
Common impurities | Manganese |
References | [2] |
Phosphophyllite (from Ancient Greek phyllon 'leaf', and phosphate[3]) is a rare mineral with the chemical formula Zn2Fe(PO4)2·4H2O, composed of hydrated zinc phosphate. It is highly prized by collectors for its rarity and for its delicate bluish green colour. Phosphophyllite is rarely cut because it is fragile and brittle, and large crystals are too valuable to be broken up.[4]
The finest phosphophyllite crystals come from Potosí, Bolivia, but it is no longer mined there. Other sources include New Hampshire, United States and Hagendorf, Bavaria, Germany. It is often found in association with the minerals chalcopyrite and triphylite.[5]
Phosphophyllite has been synthesized synthetically by the addition of diammonium phosphate to a solution of zinc and iron sulfate.[6]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Phosphophyllite
Xenotime | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Phosphate minerals |
Formula (repeating unit) | YPO4 |
IMA symbol | Xtm[1] |
Strunz classification | 8.AD.35 |
Crystal system | Tetragonal |
Crystal class | Dipyramidal (4/mmm) H-M symbol: (4/m) |
Space group | I41/a |
Identification | |
Color | Brown, brownish yellow, gray |
Crystal habit | Prismatic, radial aggregates, granular |
Cleavage | Perfect [100] |
Fracture | Uneven to splintery |
Mohs scale hardness | 4.5 |
Luster | Vitreous to resinous |
Streak | Pale brown, yellowish or reddish, to white |
Diaphaneity | Translucent to opaque |
Specific gravity | 4.4–5.1 |
Refractive index | 1.720–1.815 |
Birefringence | δ = 0.096 |
Pleochroism | Dichroic |
Other characteristics | Not radioactive or luminescent |
References | [2][3][4][5] |
Xenotime is a rare-earth phosphate mineral, the major component of which is yttrium orthophosphate (YPO4). It forms a solid solution series with chernovite-(Y) (YAsO4) and therefore may contain trace impurities of arsenic, as well as silicon dioxide and calcium. The rare-earth elements dysprosium, erbium, terbium and ytterbium, as well as metal elements such as thorium and uranium (all replacing yttrium) are the expressive secondary components of xenotime. Due to uranium and thorium impurities, some xenotime specimens may be weakly to strongly radioactive. Lithiophyllite, monazite and purpurite are sometimes grouped with xenotime in the informal "anhydrous phosphates" group. Xenotime is used chiefly as a source of yttrium and heavy lanthanide metals (dysprosium, ytterbium, erbium and gadolinium). Occasionally, gemstones are also cut from the finest xenotime crystals.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Xenotime
Struvite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Phosphate mineral |
Formula (repeating unit) | NH4MgPO4·6H2O |
IMA symbol | Suv[1] |
Strunz classification | 8.CH.40 |
Crystal system | Orthorhombic |
Crystal class | Pyramidal (mm2) H-M symbol: (mm2) |
Space group | Pmn21 |
Identification | |
Color | Colorless, white (dehydrated), yellow or brownish, light gray |
Crystal habit | Euhedral to platy |
Twinning | On {001} |
Cleavage | {100} perfect |
Fracture | Uneven |
Mohs scale hardness | 1.5–2 |
Luster | Vitreous to dull |
Streak | White |
Diaphaneity | Transparent to translucent |
Specific gravity | 1.7 |
Optical properties | Biaxial (+) 2V Measured: 37° |
Refractive index | nα = 1.495 nβ = 1.496 nγ = 1.504 |
Birefringence | δ = 0.009 |
Solubility | Slightly soluble, dehydrates in dry, warm air |
Other characteristics | Pyroelectric and piezoelectric |
References | [2][3][4] |
Struvite (magnesium ammonium phosphate) is a phosphate mineral with formula: NH4MgPO4·6H2O. Struvite crystallizes in the orthorhombic system as white to yellowish or brownish-white pyramidal crystals or in platy mica-like forms. It is a soft mineral with Mohs hardness of 1.5 to 2 and has a low specific gravity of 1.7. It is sparingly soluble in neutral and alkaline conditions, but readily soluble in acid.
Struvite urinary stones and crystals form readily in the urine of animals and humans that are infected with ammonia-producing organisms. They are potentiated by alkaline urine and high magnesium excretion (high magnesium/plant-based diets). They also are potentiated by a specific urinary protein in domestic cats.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Struvite
Arseniosiderite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Arsenate mineral |
Formula (repeating unit) | Ca2Fe3+3(AsO4)3O2·3H2O |
IMA symbol | Assd[1] |
Strunz classification | 8.DH.30 08 |
Dana classification | 42.09.02.03 |
Crystal system | Monoclinic |
Crystal class | Prismatic (2/m) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | A2/a |
Unit cell | a = 17.76, b = 19.53 c = 11.3 [Å], Z = 12 |
Identification | |
Formula mass | 766.50 g/mol |
Color | Bronze brown; yellow to black |
Crystal habit | Fibrous |
Cleavage | {100} good |
Mohs scale hardness | 4.5 |
Luster | Submetallic |
Streak | Ochraceous |
Diaphaneity | Translucent to opaque |
Specific gravity | 3.5–3.9, average = 3.7 |
Optical properties | Biaxial (-) |
Refractive index | nα = 1.815, nβ = 1.898, nγ = 1.898 |
Birefringence | δ = 0.083 |
Other characteristics | Non-fluorescent |
References | [2][3][4] |
Arseniosiderite is a rare arsenate mineral formed by the oxidation of other arsenic-containing minerals, such as scorodite or arsenopyrite. It occurs in association with beudantite, carminite, dussertite, pharmacolite, pitticite, adamite and erythrite. The name arseniosiderite reflects two major elements of the mineral, arsenic and iron (Greek sideros means iron).[4]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Arseniosiderite
Arsenopyrite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Sulfide mineral |
Formula (repeating unit) | FeAsS |
Strunz classification | 2.EB.20 |
Crystal system | Monoclinic |
Crystal class | Prismatic (2/m) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | P21/c |
Unit cell | a = 5.744, b = 5.675 c = 5.785 [Å]; β = 112.3°; Z = 4 |
Identification | |
Colour | Steel grey to silver white |
Crystal habit | Acicular, off-square prismatic, stubby; striated; also compact, granular, columnar |
Twinning | Common on {100} and {001}, contact/penetration twinning on {101} |
Cleavage | 110 (distinct) |
Fracture | Subconchoidal to rough |
Tenacity | Brittle |
Mohs scale hardness | 5.5 - 6 |
Lustre | Metallic |
Streak | Black |
Diaphaneity | Opaque |
Specific gravity | 5.9 - 6.2 |
Optical properties | Anisotropism - strong red-violet |
Pleochroism | Weak, white or bluish tint, faint reddish yellow |
Fusibility | Yes |
Solubility | Nitric acid |
Other characteristics | Garlic odour when struck, greenish tinge when weathered, green staining of wall rocks |
References | [1][2][3] |
Arsenopyrite (IMA symbol: Apy[4]) is an iron arsenic sulfide (FeAsS). It is a hard (Mohs 5.5-6) metallic, opaque, steel grey to silver white mineral with a relatively high specific gravity of 6.1.[1] When dissolved in nitric acid, it releases elemental sulfur. When arsenopyrite is heated, it produces sulfur and arsenic vapor. With 46% arsenic content, arsenopyrite, along with orpiment, is a principal ore of arsenic. When deposits of arsenopyrite become exposed to the atmosphere, the mineral slowly converts into iron arsenates. Arsenopyrite is generally an acid-consuming sulfide mineral, unlike iron pyrite which can lead to acid mine drainage.[citation needed]
The crystal habit, hardness, density, and garlic odour when struck are diagnostic. Arsenopyrite in older literature may be referred to as mispickel, a name of German origin.[5]
Arsenopyrite also can be associated with significant amounts of gold. Consequently, it serves as an indicator of gold bearing reefs. Many arsenopyrite gold ores are refractory, i.e. the gold is not easily cyanide leached from the mineral matrix.
Arsenopyrite is found in high temperature hydrothermal veins, in pegmatites, and in areas of contact metamorphism or metasomatism.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Arsenopyrite
Glaucodot | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Sulfide minerals |
Formula (repeating unit) | (Co,Fe)AsS (Co0.75Fe2+0.25AsS) |
IMA symbol | Gl[1] |
Strunz classification | 2.EB.10c |
Crystal system | Orthorhombic |
Crystal class | Prismatic (2/m) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | P21/c |
Identification | |
Formula mass | 165.15 g/mol |
Color | Grayish tin white, Reddish silver white |
Crystal habit | Massive , prismatic habits with elongated sphenoids, granular masses- Uniformly indistinguishable crystals forming large masses. |
Cleavage | None |
Fracture | Brittle - Uneven - Very brittle fracture producing uneven fragments. |
Mohs scale hardness | 5 |
Luster | Metallic |
Streak | black |
Diaphaneity | Opaque |
Specific gravity | 5.9 - 6.01, Average = 5.95 |
Ultraviolet fluorescence | inert |
Other characteristics | Nonmagnetic, non-radioactive |
Glaucodot is a cobalt iron arsenic sulfide mineral with formula (Co,Fe)AsS. The cobalt:iron(II) ratio is typically 3:1 with minor nickel substituting. It forms a series with arsenopyrite (FeAsS). It is an opaque grey to tin-white typically found as massive forms without external crystal form. It crystallizes in the orthorhombic system. The locality at Håkansboda, Sweden has rare twinned dipyramidal crystals (see photo). It is brittle with a Mohs hardness of 5 and a specific gravity of 5.95. It occurs in high temperature hydrothermal deposits with pyrrhotite and chalcopyrite. Glaucodot is classed as a sulfide in the arsenopyrite löllingite group.
Glaucodot was first described in 1849 in Huasco, Valparaíso Province, Chile. Its name originates from the Greek Ancient Greek: γλανκός ("blue") in reference to its use in the dark blue glass called smalt.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Glaucodot
Robertsite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Phosphate minerals |
Formula (repeating unit) | Ca3(Mn3+)4[(OH)3| (PO4)2]2·3H2O |
IMA symbol | Rbt[1] |
Strunz classification | 8.DH.30 |
Dana classification | 42.08.04.02 Mitridatite group |
Crystal system | Monoclinic |
Crystal class | Prismatic (2/m) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | A2/a |
Unit cell | a = 17.36 Å, b = 19.53 Å c = 11.30 Å; β = 96.0°; Z = 12 |
Identification | |
Color | Red, red-brown, deep red, bronzy brown, black |
Crystal habit | laty to wedge-shaped, pseudorhombohedral crystals; fibrous, in botryoidal to feathery aggregates |
Twinning | Common perpendicular to {100} |
Cleavage | Very good {100} |
Fracture | Micaceous |
Mohs scale hardness | 3+1⁄2 |
Luster | Vitreous to resinous or waxy |
Streak | Chocolate-brown |
Diaphaneity | Translucent |
Specific gravity | 3.13 - 3.17 |
Optical properties | Biaxial (-) |
Refractive index | nα = 1.775 nβ = 1.820 nγ = 1.820 |
Birefringence | δ = 0.045 |
Pleochroism | Strong, X pale red to pink Y,Z deep red brown |
2V angle | Measured: 8° |
References | [2][3][4] |
Robertsite, Ca3(Mn3+)4[(OH)3| (PO4)2]2·3(H2O) (alternatively formulated Ca2(Mn3(PO4)3O2)(H2O)3), is a secondary phosphate mineral named for Willard Lincoln Roberts (1923–1987), mineralogist and professor at South Dakota School of Mines in Rapid City, South Dakota.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Robertsite
Nickel–Strunz classification -08- phosphates
IMA-CNMNC proposes a new hierarchical scheme (Mills et al., 2009). This list uses it to modify the classification of Nickel–Strunz (mindat.org, 10 ed, pending publication).
- Abbreviations:
- "*" – discredited (IMA/CNMNC status).
- "?" – questionable/doubtful (IMA/CNMNC status).
- "REE" – Rare-earth element (Sc, Y, La, Ce, Pr, Nd, Pm, Sm, Eu, Gd, Tb, Dy, Ho, Er, Tm, Yb, Lu)
- "PGE" – Platinum-group element (Ru, Rh, Pd, Os, Ir, Pt)
- 03.C Aluminofluorides, 06 Borates, 08 Vanadates (04.H V[5,6] Vanadates), 09 Silicates:
- Neso: insular (from Greek νησος nēsos, island)
- Soro: grouping (from Greek σωροῦ sōros, heap, mound (especially of corn))
- Cyclo: ring
- Ino: chain (from Greek ις [genitive: ινος inos], fibre)
- Phyllo: sheet (from Greek φύλλον phyllon, leaf)
- Tekto: three-dimensional framework
- Nickel–Strunz code scheme: NN.XY.##x
- NN: Nickel–Strunz mineral class number
- X: Nickel–Strunz mineral division letter
- Y: Nickel–Strunz mineral family letter
- ##x: Nickel–Strunz mineral/group number, x add-on letter
Class: phosphates
- 08.A Phosphates, etc. without additional anions, without H2O
- 08.AA With small cations (some also with larger ones): 05 Berlinite, 05 Rodolicoite; 10 Beryllonite, 15 Hurlbutite, 20 Lithiophosphate, 25 Nalipoite, 30 Olympite
- 08.AB With medium-sized cations: 05 Farringtonite; 10 Ferrisicklerite, 10 Heterosite, 10 Natrophilite, 10 Lithiophilite, 10 Purpurite, 10 Sicklerite, 10 Simferite, 10 Triphylite; 15 Chopinite, 15 Sarcopside; 20 Beusite, 20 Graftonite
- 08.AC With medium-sized and large cations: 10 IMA2008-054, 10 Alluaudite, 10 Hagendorfite, 10 Ferroalluaudite, 10 Maghagendorfite, 10 Varulite, 10 Ferrohagendorfite*; 15 Bobfergusonite, 15 Ferrowyllieite, 15 Qingheiite, 15 Rosemaryite, 15 Wyllieite, 15 Ferrorosemaryite; 20 Maricite, 30 Brianite, 35 Vitusite-(Ce); 40 Olgite?, 40 Bario-olgite; 45 Ferromerrillite, 45 Bobdownsite, 45 Merrillite-(Ca)*, 45 Merrillite, 45 Merrillite-(Y)*, 45 Whitlockite, 45 Tuite, 45 Strontiowhitlockite; 50 Stornesite-(Y), 50 Xenophyllite, 50 Fillowite, 50 Chladniite, 50 Johnsomervilleite, 50 Galileiite; 55 Harrisonite, 60 Kosnarite, 65 Panethite, 70 Stanfieldite, 90 IMA2008-064
- 08.AD With only large cations: 05 Nahpoite, 10 Monetite, 15 Archerite, 15 Biphosphammite; 20 Phosphammite, 25 Buchwaldite; 35 Pretulite, 35 Xenotime-(Y), 35 Xenotime-(Yb); 45 Ximengite, 50 Monazite-(Ce), 50 Monazite-(La), 50 Monazite-(Nd), 50 Monazite-(Sm), 50 Brabantite?
- 08.B Phosphates, etc. with Additional Anions, without H2O
- 08.BA With small and medium-sized cations: 05 Vayrynenite; 10 Hydroxylherderite, 10 Herderite; 15 Babefphite
- 08.BB With only medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 £1:1: 05 Amblygonite, 05 Natromontebrasite?, 05 Montebrasite?, 05 Tavorite; 10 Zwieselite, 10 Triplite, 10 Magniotriplite?, 10 Hydroxylwagnerite; 15 Joosteite, 15 Stanekite, 15 Triploidite, 15 Wolfeite, 15 Wagnerite; 20 Satterlyite, 20 Holtedahlite; 25 Althausite; 30 Libethenite, 30 Zincolibethenite; 35 Tarbuttite; 40 Barbosalite, 40 Hentschelite, 40 Scorzalite, 40 Lazulite; 45 Trolleite, 55 Phosphoellenbergerite; 90 Zinclipscombite, 90 Lipscombite, 90 Richellite
- 08.BC With only medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 > 1:1 and < 2:1: 10 Plimerite, 10 Frondelite, 10 Rockbridgeite
- 08.BD With only medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 2:1: 05 Pseudomalachite, 05 Reichenbachite, 10 Gatehouseite, 25 Ludjibaite
- 08.BE With only medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 > 2:1: 05 Augelite, 10 Grattarolaite, 15 Cornetite, 30 Raadeite, 85 Waterhouseite
- 08.BF With medium-sized and large cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 < 0.5:1: 05 Arrojadite, 05 Arrojadite-(BaFe), 05 Arrojadite-(KFe), 05 Arrojadite-(NaFe), 05 Arrojadite-(SrFe), 05 Arrojadite-(KNa), 05 Arrojadite-(PbFe), 05 Arrojadite-(BaNa), 05 Fluorarrojadite-(BaNa), 05 Fluorarrojadite-(KNa), 05 Fluorarrojadite-(BaFe), 05 Ferri-arrojadite-(BaNa), 05 Dickinsonite, 05 Dickinsonite-(KNa), 05 Dickinsonite-(KMnNa), 05 Dickinsonite-(KNaNa), 05 Dickinsonite-(NaNa); 10 Samuelsonite, 15 Griphite, 20 Nabiasite
- 08.BG With medium-sized and large cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 0.5:1: 05 Bearthite, 05 Goedkenite, 05 Tsumebite; 10 Melonjosephite, 15 Tancoite
- 08.BH With medium-sized and large cations, (OH,etc.):RO4 = 1:1: 05 Thadeuite; 10 Lacroixite, 10 Isokite, 10 Panasqueiraite; 15 Drugmanite; 20 Bjarebyite, 20 Kulanite, 20 Penikisite, 20 Perloffite, 20 Johntomaite; 25 Bertossaite, 25 Palermoite; 55 Jagowerite, 60 Attakolite
- 08.BK With medium-sized and large cations, (OH, etc.): 05 Brazilianite, 15 Curetonite, 25 Lulzacite
- 08.BL With medium-sized and large cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 3:1: 05 Corkite, 05 Hinsdalite, 05 Orpheite, 05 Woodhouseite, 05 Svanbergite; 10 Kintoreite, 10 Benauite, 10 Crandallite, 10 Goyazite, 10 Springcreekite, 10 Gorceixite; 10 Lusungite?, 10 Plumbogummite, 10 Ferrazite?; 13 Eylettersite, 13 Florencite-(Ce), 13 Florencite-(La), 13 Florencite-(Nd), 13 Waylandite, 13 Zairite; 15 Viitaniemiite, 20 Kuksite, 25 Pattersonite
- 08.BM With medium-sized and large cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 4:1: 10 Paulkellerite, 15 Brendelite
- 08.BN With only large cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 0.33:1: 05 IMA2008-068, 05 Phosphohedyphane, 05 IMA2008-009, 05 Alforsite, 05 Apatite*, 05 Apatite-(CaOH), 05 Apatite-(CaCl), 05 Apatite-(CaF), 05 Apatite-(SrOH), 05 Apatite-(CaOH)-M, Carbonate-fluorapatite?, 05 Carbonate-hydroxylapatite?, 05 Belovite-(Ce), 05 Belovite-(La), 05 Fluorcaphite, 05 Pyromorphite, 05 Hydroxylpyromorphite, 05 Deloneite-(Ce), 05 Kuannersuite-(Ce), 10 Arctite
- 08.BO With only large cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 1:1: 05 Nacaphite, 10 Petitjeanite, 15 Smrkovecite, 25 Heneuite, 30 Nefedovite, 40 Artsmithite
- 08.C Phosphates without Additional Anions, with H2O
- 08.CA With small and large/medium cations: 05 Fransoletite, 05 Parafransoletite; 10 Ehrleite, 15 Faheyite; 20 Gainesite, 20 Mccrillisite, 20 Selwynite; 25 Pahasapaite, 30 Hopeite, 40 Phosphophyllite; 45 Parascholzite, 45 Scholzite; 65 Gengenbachite, 70 Parahopeite
- 08.CB With only medium-sized cations, RO4:H2O = 1:1: 05 Serrabrancaite, 10 Hureaulite
- 08.CC With only medium-sized cations, RO4:H2O = 1:1.5: 05 Garyansellite, 05 Kryzhanovskite, 05 Landesite, 05 Phosphoferrite, 05 Reddingite
- 08.CD With only medium-sized cations, RO4:H2O = 1:2: 05 Kolbeckite, 05 Metavariscite, 05 Phosphosiderite; 10 Strengite, 10 Variscite; 20 Ludlamite
- 08.CE With only medium-sized cations, RO4:H2O £1:2.5: 10 Newberyite, 20 Phosphorrosslerite; 25 Metaswitzerite, 25 Switzerite; 35 Bobierrite; 40 Arupite, 40 Baricite, 40 Vivianite, 40 Pakhomovskyite; 50 Cattiite, 55 Koninckite; 75 IMA2008-046, 75 Malhmoodite; 80 Santabarbaraite, 85 Metavivianite
- 08.CF With large and medium-sized cations, RO4:H2O > 1:1: 05 Tassieite, 05 Wicksite, 05 Bederite; 10 Haigerachite
- 08.CG With large and medium-sized cations, RO4:H2O = 1:1: 05 Collinsite, 05 Cassidyite, 05 Fairfieldite, 05 Messelite, 05 Hillite, (05 Uranophane-beta but Uranophane 09.AK.15); 20 Phosphogartrellite
- 08.CH With large and medium-sized cations, RO4:H2O < 1:1: 10 Anapaite, 20 Dittmarite, 20 Niahite, 25 Francoanellite, 25 Taranakite, 30 Schertelite, 35 Hannayite, 40 Hazenite, 40 Struvite, 40 Struvite-(K), 45 Rimkorolgite, 50 Bakhchisaraitsevite, 55 IMA2008-048
- 08.CJ With only large cations: 05 Stercorite, 10 Mundrabillaite, 10 Swaknoite, 15 Nastrophite, 15 Nabaphite, 45 Brockite, 45 Grayite, 45 Rhabdophane-(Ce), 45 Rhabdophane-(La), 45 Rhabdophane-(Nd), 45 Tristramite, 50 Brushite, 50 Churchite-(Dy)*, 50 Churchite-(Nd), 50 Churchite-(Y), 50 Ardealite, 60 Dorfmanite, 70 Catalanoite, 80 Ningyoite
- 08.D Phosphates
- 08.DA With small (and occasionally larger) cations: 05 Moraesite, 10 Footemineite, 10 Ruifrancoite, 10 Guimaraesite, 10 Roscherite, 10 Zanazziite, 10 Atencioite, 10 Greifensteinite; 15 Uralolite, 20 Weinebeneite, 25 Tiptopite, 30 Veszelyite, 35 Kipushite, 40 Spencerite, 45 Glucine
- 08.DB With only medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 < 1:1: 05 Diadochite, 10 Vashegyite, 15 Schoonerite, 20 Sinkankasite, 25 Mitryaevaite, 30 Sanjuanite, 50 Giniite, 55 Sasaite, 60 Mcauslanite, 65 Goldquarryite, 70 Birchite
- 08.DC With only medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 1:1 and < 2:1: 05 Nissonite; 15 Kunatite, 15 Earlshannonite, 15 Whitmoreite; 17 Kleemanite, 20 Bermanite, 207? Oxiberaunite*, 22 Kovdorskite; 25 Ferrostrunzite, 25 Ferristrunzite, 25 Metavauxite, 25 Strunzite; 27 Beraunite; 30 Gordonite, 30 Laueite, 30 Sigloite, 30 Paravauxite, 30 Ushkovite, 30 Ferrolaueite, 30 Mangangordonite, 30 Pseudolaueite, 30 Stewartite, 30 Kastningite, 35 Vauxite, 37 Vantasselite, 40 Cacoxenite; 45 Gormanite, 45 Souzalite; 47 Kingite; 50 Wavellite, 50 Allanpringite, 52 Kribergite, 60 Nevadaite
- 08.DD With only medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 2:1: 15 Aheylite, 15 Chalcosiderite, 15 Faustite, 15 Planerite, 15 Turquoise; 20 Ernstite, 20 Childrenite, 20 Eosphorite
- 08.DE With only medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 3:1: 05 Senegalite, 10 Fluellite, 20 Zapatalite, (35 Alumoakermanite, Mindat.org: 09.BB.10), 35 Aldermanite
- 08.DF With only medium-sized cations, (OH,etc.):RO4 > 3:1: 05 Hotsonite-VII, 05 Hotsonite-VI; 10 Bolivarite, 10 Evansite, 10 Rosieresite, 25 Sieleckiite, 40 Gladiusite
- 08.DG With large and medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 < 0.5:1: 05 Sampleite
- 08.DH With large and medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 < 1:1: 05 Minyulite; 10 Leucophosphite, 10 Spheniscidite, 10 Tinsleyite; 15 Kaluginite*, 15 Keckite, 15 Jahnsite-(CaMnFe), 15 Jahnsite-(CaMnMg), 15 Jahnsite-(CaMnMn), 15 Jahnsite-(MnMnMn)*, 15 Jahnsite-(CaFeFe), 15 Jahnsite-(NaFeMg), 15 Jahnsite-(CaMgMg), 15 Jahnsite-(NaMnMg), 15 Rittmannite, 15 Whiteite-(MnFeMg), 15 Whiteite-(CaFeMg), 15 Whiteite-(CaMnMg); 20 Manganosegelerite, 20 Overite, 20 Segelerite, 20 Wilhelmvierlingite, 20 Juonniite; 25 Calcioferrite, 25 Kingsmountite, 25 Montgomeryite, 25 Zodacite; 30 Lunokite, 30 Pararobertsite, 30 Robertsite, 30 Mitridatite; 35 Matveevite?, 35 Mantienneite, 35 Paulkerrite, 35 Benyacarite, 40 Xanthoxenite, 55 Englishite
- 08.DJ With large and medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 1:l: 05 Johnwalkite, 05 Olmsteadite, 10 Gatumbaite, 20 Meurigite-Na, 20 Meurigite-K, 20 Phosphofibrite, 25 Jungite, 30 Wycheproofite, 35 Ercitite, 40 Mrazekite
- 08.DK With large and medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 > 1:1 and < 2:1: 15 Matioliite, 15 IMA2008-056, 15 Dufrenite, 15 Burangaite, 15 Natrodufrenite; 20 Kidwellite, 25 Bleasdaleite, 30 Matulaite, 35 Krasnovite
- 08.DL With large and medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 = 2:1: 05 Foggite; 10 Cyrilovite, 10 Millisite, 10 Wardite; 15 Petersite-(Y), 15 Calciopetersite; 25 Angastonite
- 08.DM With large and medium-sized cations, (OH, etc.):RO4 > 2:1: 05 Morinite, 15 Melkovite, 25 Gutsevichite?, 35 Delvauxite
- 08.DN With only large cations: 05 Natrophosphate, 10 Isoclasite, 15 Lermontovite, 20 Vyacheslavite
- 08.DO With CO3, SO4, SiO4: 05 Girvasite, 10 Voggite, 15 Peisleyite, 20 Perhamite, 25 Saryarkite-(Y), 30 Micheelsenite, 40 Parwanite, 45 Skorpionite
- 08.E Uranyl Phosphates
- 08.EA UO2:RO4 = 1:2: 05 Phosphowalpurgite, 10 Parsonsite, 15 Ulrichite, 20 Lakebogaite
- 08.EB UO2:RO4 = 1:1: 05 Autunite, 05 Uranocircite, 05 Torbernite, 05 Xiangjiangite, 05 Saleeite; 10 Bassetite, 10 Meta-autunite, 10 Metauranocircite, 10 Metatorbernite, 10 Lehnerite, 10 Przhevalskite; 15 Chernikovite, 15 Meta-ankoleite, 15 Uramphite; 20 Threadgoldite, 25 Uranospathite, 30 Vochtenite, 35 Coconinoite, 40 Ranunculite, 45 Triangulite, 50 Furongite, 55 Sabugalite
- 08.EC UO2:RO4 = 3:2: 05 Francoisite-(Ce), 05 Francoisite-(Nd), 05 Phuralumite, 05 Upalite; 10 Kivuite?, 10 Yingjiangite, 10 Renardite, 10 Dewindtite, 10 Phosphuranylite; 15 Dumontite; 20 Metavanmeersscheite, 20 Vanmeersscheite; 25 Althupite, 30 Mundite, 35 Phurcalite, 40 Bergenite
- 08.ED Unclassified: 05 Moreauite, 10 Sreinite, 15 Kamitugaite
- 08.F Polyphosphates
- 08.FA Polyphosphates, without OH and H2O; dimers of corner-sharing RO4 tetrahedra: 20 Pyrocoproite*, 20 Pyrophosphite*
- 08.FC Polyphosphates, with H2O only: 10 Canaphite, 20 Arnhemite*, 25 Wooldridgeite, 30 Kanonerovite
- 08.X Unclassified Strunz Phosphates
- 08.XX Unknown: 00 Sodium-autunite, 00 Pseudo-autunite*, 00 Cheralite-(Ce)?, 00 Laubmannite?, 00 Spodiosite?, 00 Sodium meta-autunite, 00 Kerstenite?, 00 Lewisite, 00 Coeruleolactite, 00 Viseite, 00 IMA2009-005
References
- Hurlbut, Cornelius S.; Klein, Cornelis, 1985, Manual of Mineralogy, 20th ed., John Wiley and Sons, New York ISBN 0-471-80580-7
- Stuart J. Mills; Frédéric Hatert; Ernest H. Nickel & Giovanni Ferraris (2009). "The standardisation of mineral group hierarchies: application to recent nomenclature proposals" (PDF). Eur. J. Mineral. 21 (5): 1073–1080. Bibcode:2009EJMin..21.1073M. doi:10.1127/0935-1221/2009/0021-1994.
- Ernest H. Nickel & Monte C. Nichols (March 2009). "IMA-CNMNC List of Mineral Names" (PDF). IMA-CNMNC.
- Ferraiolo, Jim. "Nickel–Strunz (Version 10) Classification System". webmineral.com.
- Webmineral - Dana
- - Australian Mineral Atlas
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Phosphate_mineral
Category:Beryllium minerals
Minerals containing the chemical element beryllium.
Subcategories
This category has only the following subcategory.
B
- Beryl group (2 C, 8 P)
Pages in category "Beryllium minerals"
The following 24 pages are in this category, out of 24 total. This list may not reflect recent changes.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Category:Beryllium_minerals
Greifensteinite | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Phosphate mineral Roscherite group |
Formula (repeating unit) | Ca2Fe2+5Be4(PO4)6(OH)4·6H2O |
IMA symbol | Gfs[1] |
Strunz classification | 8.DA.10 |
Dana classification | 42.7.7.4 |
Crystal system | Monoclinic |
Crystal class | Prismatic (2/m) (same H-M symbol) |
Space group | C2/c |
Unit cell | a = 15.903, b = 11.885 c = 6.677 [Å]; β = 94.68°; Z = 2 |
Identification | |
Color | Yellow green, olive green, light brown |
Crystal habit | Prismatic |
Cleavage | Good on {100} (or parting on {100})[2] |
Fracture | Uneven |
Tenacity | brittle |
Mohs scale hardness | 4.5 |
Luster | Vitreous |
Streak | White, greenish |
Diaphaneity | Transparent to translucent |
Specific gravity | 2.93 |
Optical properties | Biaxial (-) |
Refractive index | nα: 1.624 nβ: 1.634 nγ: 1.638 |
Birefringence | 0.014 |
2V angle | 80° |
References | [2][3][4] |
Greifensteinite is beryllium phosphate mineral with formula: Ca2Fe2+5Be4(PO4)6(OH)4·6H2O. It is the Fe2+ dominant member of the roscherite group.[5] It crystallizes in the monoclinic crystal system and typically forms prismatic dark olive green crystals.[2]
It was first described in Germany at Greifenstein Rocks, Ehrenfriedersdorf, and was named for the location. At the type locality, it occurs within a lithium-rich pegmatite in miarolitic cavities. It was approved by the International Mineralogical Association in 2002.[2]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Greifensteinite
An example of the monoclinic crystal orthoclase
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Monoclinic_crystal_system
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Bravais_lattice
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Electron_hole
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Gino
Adularia (KAlSi3O8) with pyrite (FeS2) incrustations
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Orthoclase
Orthoclase is a common constituent of most granites and other felsic igneous rocks and often forms huge crystals and masses in pegmatite.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Orthoclase
Orthoclase
Orthoclase | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Silicate mineral |
Formula (repeating unit) | KAlSi3O8 |
IMA symbol | Or[1] |
Strunz classification | 9.FA.30 |
Crystal system | Monoclinic |
Crystal class | Prismatic (2/m) (same H–M symbol) |
Space group | C2/m |
Identification | |
Color | Colorless, greenish, greyish yellow, white, pink |
Crystal habit | Can be anhedral or euhedral. Grains are commonly elongate with a tabular appearance. |
Twinning | Typically displays Carlsbad twinning. Baveno and manebach twins have also been reported in orthoclase. |
Cleavage | Has perfect cleavage on {001} and good cleavage on {010}. Cleavages intersect at 90°. It can be difficult to see cleavage in thin section due to orthoclase's low relief. |
Fracture | Uneven |
Mohs scale hardness | 6 (defining mineral) |
Luster | Vitreous, pearly on cleavage surfaces |
Streak | White |
Diaphaneity | Transparent to translucent |
Specific gravity | 2.55–2.63 |
Optical properties | Biaxial (−), 2V = 65–75 |
Refractive index | nα = 1.518–1.520 nβ = 1.522–1.524 nγ = 1.522–1.525 |
Birefringence | 0.0050–0.0060 |
Dispersion | Relatively strong |
Extinction | Parallel to cleavage |
Length fast/slow | No slow or fast length |
Diagnostic features | Distinguishable from microcline by a lack in gridiron twinning. Distinguishable from sanidine by a larger 2Vx. |
Other characteristics | Low negative relief; alters to sericite or clay (commonly) |
References | [2][3][4] |
Orthoclase, or orthoclase feldspar (endmember formula KAlSi3O8), is an important tectosilicate mineral which forms igneous rock. The name is from the Ancient Greek for "straight fracture", because its two cleavage planes are at right angles to each other. It is a type of potassium feldspar, also known as K-feldspar. The gem known as moonstone (see below) is largely composed of orthoclase.
Formation and subtypes
Orthoclase is a common constituent of most granites and other felsic igneous rocks and often forms huge crystals and masses in pegmatite.
Typically, the pure potassium endmember of orthoclase forms a solid solution with albite, the sodium endmember (NaAlSi3O8), of plagioclase. While slowly cooling within the earth, sodium-rich albite lamellae form by exsolution, enriching the remaining orthoclase with potassium. The resulting intergrowth of the two feldspars is called perthite.
The higher-temperature polymorph of KAlSi3O8 is sanidine. Sanidine is common in rapidly cooled volcanic rocks such as obsidian and felsic pyroclastic rocks, and is notably found in trachytes of the Drachenfels, Germany. The lower-temperature polymorph of KAlSi3O8 is microcline.
Adularia is a low temperature form of either microcline or orthoclase originally reported from the low temperature hydrothermal deposits in the Adula Alps of Switzerland.[5] It was first described by Ermenegildo Pini in 1781.[6] The optical effect of adularescence in moonstone is typically due to adularia.[7]
The largest documented single crystal of orthoclase was found in the Ural mountains in Russia. It measured around 10 m × 10 m × 0.4 m (33 ft × 33 ft × 1 ft) and weighed around 100 tonnes (110 short tons).[8]
Uses
Together with the other potassium feldspars, orthoclase is a common raw material for the manufacture of some glasses and some ceramics such as porcelain, and as a constituent of scouring powder.
Some intergrowths of orthoclase and albite have an attractive pale luster and are called moonstone when used in jewellery. Most moonstones are translucent and white, although grey and peach-colored varieties also occur. In gemology, their luster is called adularescence and is typically described as creamy or silvery white with a "billowy" quality. It is the state gem of Florida.
The gemstone commonly called rainbow moonstone is more properly a colorless form of labradorite and can be distinguished from "true" moonstone by its greater transparency and play of color, although their value and durability do not greatly differ.
Orthoclase is one of the ten defining minerals of the Mohs scale of mineral hardness, on which it is listed as having a hardness of 6.
NASA's Curiosity rover discovery of high levels of orthoclase in Martian sandstones suggested that some Martian rocks may have experienced complex geological processing, such as repeated melting.[9]
See also
References
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Orthoclase
Pyroclastic rocks (derived from the Greek: πῦρ, meaning fire; and κλαστός, meaning broken) are clastic rocks composed of rock fragments produced and ejected by explosive volcanic eruptions. The individual rock fragments are known as pyroclasts. Pyroclastic rocks are a type of volcaniclastic deposit, which are deposits made predominantly of volcanic particles.[1][2] 'Phreatic' pyroclastic deposits are a variety of pyroclastic rock that forms from volcanic steam explosions and they are entirely made of accidental clasts. 'Phreatomagmatic' pyroclastic deposits are formed from explosive interaction of magma with groundwater.[3]
Unconsolidated accumulations of pyroclasts are described as tephra. Tephra may become lithified to a pyroclastic rock by cementation or chemical reactions as the result of the passage of hot gases (fumarolic alteration) or groundwater (e.g. hydrothermal alteration and diagenesis) and burial, or, if it is emplaced at temperatures so hot that the soft glassy pyroclasts stick together at point contacts, and deform: this is known as welding.[4]
One of the most spectacular types of pyroclastic deposit is an ignimbrite, which is the deposit of a ground-hugging pumiceous pyroclastic density current (a rapidly flowing hot suspension of pyroclasts in gas). Ignimbrites may be loose deposits or solid rock, and they can bury entire landscapes. An individual ignimbrite can exceed 1000 km3 in volume, can cover 20,000 km2 of land, and may exceed 1 km in thickness, for example where it is ponded within a volcanic caldera.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Pyroclastic_rock
Obsidian | |
---|---|
General | |
Category | Volcanic glass |
Identification | |
Color | usually black; sometimes green or brown; rarely yellow, orange, red or blue[1] |
Fracture | Conchoidal |
Mohs scale hardness | 5–6[2] |
Luster | Vitreous |
Specific gravity | c. 2.4[3] |
Optical properties | Translucent |
Other characteristics | Texture: Smooth; glassy |
References | [4] |
Obsidian (/əbˈsɪdi.ən, ɒb-/)[5] is a naturally occurring volcanic glass formed when lava extruded from a volcano cools rapidly with minimal crystal growth. It is an igneous rock.[6]
Obsidian is produced from felsic lava, rich in the lighter elements such as silicon, oxygen, aluminium, sodium, and potassium. It is commonly found within the margins of rhyolitic lava flows known as obsidian flows. These flows have a high content of silica, granting them a high viscosity. The high viscosity inhibits diffusion of atoms through the lava, which inhibits the first step (nucleation) in the formation of mineral crystals. Together with rapid cooling, this results in a natural glass forming from the lava.[7]
Obsidian is hard, brittle, and amorphous; it therefore fractures with sharp edges. In the past, it was used to manufacture cutting and piercing tools, and it has been used experimentally as surgical scalpel blades.[8]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Obsidian
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Pliny_the_Elder
Obsidian talus at Obsidian Dome, California
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Obsidian
Glass Mountain, a large obsidian flow at Medicine Lake Volcano in Californiahttps://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Obsidian
Obsidian arrowheadhttps://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Obsidian
The first known archaeological evidence of usage was in Kariandusi (Kenya) and other sites of the Acheulian age (beginning 1.5 million years BP) dated 700,000 BC, although only very few objects have been found at these sites relative to the Neolithic.[33][34][35][36][37] Manufacture of obsidian bladelets at Lipari had reached a high level of sophistication by the late Neolithic, and was traded as far as Sicily, the southern Po river valley, and Croatia.[38] Obsidian bladelets were used in ritual circumcisions and cutting of umbilical cords of newborns.[39] Anatolian sources of obsidian are known to have been the material used in the Levant and modern-day Iraqi Kurdistan from a time beginning sometime about 12,500 BC.[40] Obsidian artifacts are common at Tell Brak, one of the earliest Mesopotamian urban centers, dating to the late fifth millennium BC.[41] Obsidian was valued in Stone Age cultures because, like flint, it could be fractured to produce sharp blades or arrowheads in a process called knapping. Like all glass and some other naturally occurring rocks, obsidian breaks with a characteristic conchoidal fracture. It was also polished to create early mirrors. Modern archaeologists have developed a relative dating system, obsidian hydration dating, to calculate the age of obsidian artifacts.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Obsidian
Obsidian tools from Tilkitepe, Turkey, 5th millennium BC. Museum of Anatolian Civilizations
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Obsidian
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Spherulite
Plinths for audio turntables have been made of obsidian since the 1970s, such as the grayish-black SH-10B3 plinth by Technics.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Obsidian
See also
- Apache tears – Popular term for pebbles of obsidian
- Helenite
- Hyaloclastite – Volcaniclastic accumulation or breccia and tachylite – volcanic glasses with basaltic composition
- Knapping – Shaping of conchoidal fracturing stone to manufacture stone tools
- Libyan desert glass – Desert glass found in Libya and Egypt
- Mayor Island / Tūhua – New Zealand shield volcano - a source of Māori obsidian tools
- Obsidian hydration dating – scientific method used to age or date obsidian objects
- Stone tool – Any tool, partially or entirely, made out of stone
- Yaxchilan Lintel 24 – Ancient Maya limestone carving from Yaxchilan in modern Chiapas, Mexico – Ancient carving showing a Maya bloodlet ritual involving a rope with obsidian shards.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Obsidian
Matrix (geology)
The matrix or groundmass of a rock is the finer-grained mass of material in which larger grains, crystals, or clasts are embedded.
The matrix of an igneous rock consists of finer-grained, often microscopic, crystals in which larger crystals, called phenocrysts, are embedded. This porphyritic texture is indicative of multi-stage cooling of magma. For example, porphyritic andesite will have large phenocrysts of plagioclase in a fine-grained matrix. Also in South Africa, diamonds are often mined from a matrix of weathered clay-like rock (kimberlite) called "yellow ground".
The matrix of sedimentary rocks is finer-grained sedimentary material, such as clay or silt, in which larger grains or clasts are embedded. It is also used to describe the rock material in which a fossil is embedded.
Cementation
All sediments are at first in an incoherent condition (e.g. sands, clays and gravels, beds of shells), and they may remain in this state for an indefinite period. Millions of years have elapsed since some of the early Tertiary strata gathered on the ocean floor, yet they are quite friable (e.g. the London Clay) and differ little from many recent accumulations. There are few exceptions to the rule that with increasing age sedimentary rocks become more and more indurated. Generally, the older the strata the more likely it is that they will have the firm consistency generally implied in the term "rock".[1]
The pressure of newer sediments on underlying masses is apparently one cause of this hardening, though not in itself a very powerful one. More efficiency is generally ascribed to the action of percolating water, which takes up water-soluble materials and then redeposits them in pores and cavities. This operation is probably accelerated by the increased pressure produced by superincumbent masses, and to some extent also by the rise of temperature which inevitably takes place in rocks buried to some depth beneath the surface. The rise of temperature, however, may be only a tiny increase; we know more than one instance of sedimentary deposits which have been buried beneath four or five miles of similar strata (e.g. parts of the Old Red Sandstone), and yet no perceptible difference is apparent between beds of similar composition at the top of the series and near its base. Should the deposits have been truly "baked", that is, subject to a large increase in temperature, then differences would be evident.[1]
The redeposited cementing material is most commonly calcareous or siliceous. Limestones, which were originally a loose accumulation of shells, corals, etc., become compacted into firm rock in this manner; and the process often takes place with surprising ease, as for example, in the deeper parts of coral reefs, or even in wind-blown masses of shelly sand exposed merely to the action of rain. The cementing substance may be regularly deposited in crystalline continuity on the original grains, where these were crystalline, and even in sandstones (such as Kentish rag), a crystalline matrix of calcite often envelops the sand grains. The change of aragonite to calcite and of calcite to dolomite, by forming new crystalline masses in the interior of the rock, usually also accelerates consolidations. Silica is less easily soluble in ordinary waters, but even this ingredient of rocks is dissolved and redeposited with great frequency. Many sandstones are held together by an infinitesimal amount of colloid or cryptocrystalline silica; when freshly dug from the quarry they are soft and easily trimmed, but after exposure to the air for some time they become much harder, as their siliceous cement sets and passes into a rigid condition. Others contain fine scales of kaolin or of mica. Argillaceous materials may be compacted by mere pressure, like graphite and other scaly minerals.[1]
References
- public domain: Flett, John Smith (1911). "Petrology". In Chisholm, Hugh (ed.). Encyclopædia Britannica. Vol. 21 (11th ed.). Cambridge University Press. p. 332. One or more of the preceding sentences incorporates text from a publication now in the
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Matrix_(geology)
Part of a series on |
Human history Human Era |
---|
↑ Prehistory (Pleistocene epoch) |
|
|
|
|
↓ Future |
History of technology |
---|
|
|
|
|
|
The Neolithic Revolution, or the (First) Agricultural Revolution, was the wide-scale transition of many human cultures during the Neolithic period from a lifestyle of hunting and gathering to one of agriculture and settlement, making an increasingly large population possible.[1] These settled communities permitted humans to observe and experiment with plants, learning how they grew and developed.[2] This new knowledge led to the domestication of plants into crops.[2][3]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Neolithic_Revolution
The Ubaid period (c. 5500–3700 BC)[1] is a prehistoric period of Mesopotamia. The name derives from Tell al-'Ubaid where the earliest large excavation of Ubaid period material was conducted initially in 1919 by Henry Hall and later by Leonard Woolley.[2][3]
In South Mesopotamia the period is the earliest known period on the alluvial plain although it is likely earlier periods exist obscured under the alluvium.[4] In the south it has a very long duration between about 5500 and 3800 BC when it is replaced by the Uruk period.[5]
In Northern Mesopotamia the period runs only between about 5300 and 4300 BC.[5] It is preceded by the Halaf period and the Halaf-Ubaid Transitional period and succeeded by the Late Chalcolithic period.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ubaid_period
Geographical range | Mesopotamia |
---|---|
Period | Copper Age |
Dates | ca. 4000–3100 BC |
Type site | Uruk |
Preceded by | Ubaid period |
Followed by | Jemdet Nasr period |
The Uruk period (ca. 4000 to 3100 BC; also known as Protoliterate period) existed from the protohistoric Chalcolithic to Early Bronze Age period in the history of Mesopotamia, after the Ubaid period and before the Jemdet Nasr period.[1] Named after the Sumerian city of Uruk, this period saw the emergence of urban life in Mesopotamia and the Sumerian civilization.[2] The late Uruk period (34th to 32nd centuries) saw the gradual emergence of the cuneiform script and corresponds to the Early Bronze Age; it has also been described as the "Protoliterate period".[3][4]
It was during this period that pottery painting declined as copper started to become popular, along with cylinder seals.[5]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Uruk_period
Location | Al-Warka, Muthanna Governorate, Iraq |
---|---|
Region | Mesopotamia |
Coordinates | 31°19′27″N 45°38′14″ECoordinates: 31°19′27″N 45°38′14″E |
Type | Settlement |
Area | 6 km2 (2.3 sq mi) |
History | |
Founded | 4th millennium BC |
Abandoned | Approximately 700 AD |
Periods | Uruk period to Early Middle Ages |
Site notes | |
| |
Official name | Uruk Archaeological City |
Part of | Ahwar of Southern Iraq |
Criteria | Mixed: (iii)(v)(ix)(x) |
Reference | 1481-005 |
Inscription | 2016 (40th Session) |
Area | 541 ha (2.09 sq mi) |
Buffer zone | 292 ha (1.13 sq mi) |
Uruk, today known as Warka, was an ancient city of Sumer (and later of Babylonia) situated east of the present bed of the Euphrates River on the dried-up ancient channel of the Euphrates 30 km (19 mi) east of modern Samawah, Al-Muthannā, Iraq.[1]
Uruk is the type site for the Uruk period. Uruk played a leading role in the early urbanization of Sumer in the mid-4th millennium BC. By the final phase of the Uruk period around 3100 BC, the city may have had 40,000 residents,[2] with 80,000–90,000 people living in its environs,[3] making it the largest urban area in the world at the time. The legendary king Gilgamesh, according to the chronology presented in the Sumerian King List (henceforth SKL), ruled Uruk in the 27th century BC. The city lost its prime importance around 2000 BC in the context of the struggle of Babylonia against Elam, but it remained inhabited throughout the Seleucid (312–63 BC) and Parthian (227 BC to 224 AD) periods until it was finally abandoned shortly before or after the Islamic conquest of 633–638.
William Kennett Loftus visited the site of Uruk in 1849, identifying it as "Erech", known as "the second city of Nimrod", and led the first excavations from 1850 to 1854.[4]
Etymology
Uruk (/ˈʊrʊk/;[5]) has several spellings in cuneiform; in Sumerian it is 𒀕𒆠 unugki;[6] in Akkadian, 𒌷𒀕 or 𒌷𒀔 Uruk (URUUNUG). Its names in other languages include: Arabic: وركاء or أوروك, Warkāʼ or Auruk; Syriac: ܐܘܿܪܘܿܟ,‘Úrūk; Hebrew: אֶרֶךְ ʼÉreḵ; Ancient Greek: Ὀρχόη, romanized: Orkhóē, Ὀρέχ Orékh, Ὠρύγεια Ōrúgeia.
Though the Arabic name of the present-day country of al-ʿIrāq is often thought to be derived from the name Uruk, it is more likely loaned via Middle Persian (Erāq) and then Aramaic ’yrg[7] transmission.[8]
Prominence
In myth and literature, Uruk was famous as the capital city of Gilgamesh, hero of the Epic of Gilgamesh. Scholars identify Uruk as the biblical Erech (Genesis 10:10), the second city founded by Nimrod in Shinar.[9]
Uruk Period
In addition to being one of the first cities, Uruk was the main force of urbanization and state formation during the Uruk period, or 'Uruk expansion' (4000–3200 BC). This period of 800 years saw a shift from small, agricultural villages to a larger urban center with a full-time bureaucracy, military, and stratified society. Although other settlements coexisted with Uruk, they were generally about 10 hectares while Uruk was significantly larger and more complex. The Uruk period culture exported by Sumerian traders and colonists had an effect on all surrounding peoples, who gradually evolved their own comparable, competing economies and cultures. Ultimately, Uruk could not maintain long-distance control over colonies such as Tell Brak by military force.
Geographic Factors
Geographic factors underpin Uruk's unprecedented growth. The city was located in the southern part of Mesopotamia, an ancient site of civilization, on the Euphrates river. Through the gradual and eventual domestication of native grains from the Zagros foothills and extensive irrigation techniques, the area supported a vast variety of edible vegetation. This domestication of grain and its proximity to rivers enabled Uruk's growth into the largest Sumerian settlement, in both population and area, with relative ease.[10]
Uruk's agricultural surplus and large population base facilitated processes such as trade, specialization of crafts and the evolution of writing; writing may have originated in Uruk around 3300 BC.[11] Evidence from excavations such as extensive pottery and the earliest known tablets of writing support these events. Excavation of Uruk is highly complex because older buildings were recycled into newer ones, thus blurring the layers of different historic periods. The topmost layer most likely originated in the Jemdet Nasr period (3100–2900 BC) and is built on structures from earlier periods dating back to the Ubaid period.
History
According to the SKL, Uruk was founded by the king Enmerkar. Though the king-list mentions a father before him, the epic Enmerkar and the Lord of Aratta relates that Enmerkar constructed the House of Heaven (Sumerian: e2-anna; cuneiform: 𒂍𒀭 E2.AN) for the goddess Inanna in the Eanna District of Uruk. In the Epic of Gilgamesh, Gilgamesh builds the city wall around Uruk and is king of the city.
Uruk went through several phases of growth, from the Early Uruk period (4000–3500 BC) to the Late Uruk period (3500–3100 BC).[1] The city was formed when two smaller Ubaid settlements merged. The temple complexes at their cores became the Eanna District and the Anu District dedicated to Inanna and Anu, respectively.[1] The Anu District was originally called 'Kullaba' (Kulab or Unug-Kulaba) prior to merging with the Eanna District. Kullaba dates to the Eridu period when it was one of the oldest and most important cities of Sumer. There are different interpretations about the purposes of the temples. However, it is generally believed they were a unifying feature of the city. It also seems clear that temples served both an important religious function and state function. The surviving temple archive of the Neo-Babylonian period documents the social function of the temple as a redistribution center.
The Eanna District was composed of several buildings with spaces for workshops, and it was walled off from the city. By contrast, the Anu District was built on a terrace with a temple at the top. It is clear Eanna was dedicated to Inanna from the earliest Uruk period throughout the history of the city.[12] The rest of the city was composed of typical courtyard houses, grouped by profession of the occupants, in districts around Eanna and Anu. Uruk was extremely well penetrated by a canal system that has been described as, "Venice in the desert."[13] This canal system flowed throughout the city connecting it with the maritime trade on the ancient Euphrates River as well as the surrounding agricultural belt.
The original city of Uruk was situated southwest of the ancient Euphrates River, now dry. Currently, the site of Warka is northeast of the modern Euphrates river. The change in position was caused by a shift in the Euphrates at some point in history, which, together with salination due to irrigation, may have contributed to the decline of Uruk.
Archaeological Levels of Uruk
Archeologists have discovered multiple cities of Uruk built atop each other in chronological order.[14]
- Uruk XVIII Eridu period (c. 5000 BC); the founding of Uruk
- Uruk XVIII–XVI Late Ubaid period (4800–4200 BC)
- Uruk XVI–X Early Uruk period (4000–3800 BC)
- Uruk IX–VI Middle Uruk period (3800–3400 BC)
- Uruk V–IV Late Uruk period (3400–3100 BC); The earliest monumental temples of Eanna District are built
- Uruk III Jemdet Nasr period (3100–2900 BC); The 9 km city wall is built
- Uruk II
- Uruk I
Anu District
The great Anu district is older than the Eanna district; however, few remains of writing have been found here. Unlike the Eanna district, the Anu district consists of a single massive terrace, the Anu Ziggurat, dedicated to the Sumerian sky god Anu. Sometime in the Uruk III period the massive White Temple was built atop of the ziggurat. Under the northwest edge of the ziggurat an Uruk VI period structure, the Stone Temple, has been discovered.
The Stone Temple was built of limestone and bitumen on a podium of rammed earth and plastered with lime mortar. The podium itself was built over a woven reed mat called ĝipar, which was ritually used as a nuptial bed. The ĝipar was a source of generative power which then radiated upward into the structure.[16] The structure of the Stone Temple further develops some mythological concepts from Enuma Elish, perhaps involving libation rites as indicated from the channels, tanks, and vessels found there. The structure was ritually destroyed, covered with alternating layers of clay and stone, then excavated and filled with mortar sometime later.
The Anu Ziggurat began with a massive mound topped by a cella during the Uruk period (ca. 4000 BC), and was expanded through 14 phases of construction. These phases have been labeled L to A3 (L is sometimes called X).[17] The earliest phase used architectural features similar to PPNA cultures in Anatolia: a single chamber cella with a terrazzo floor beneath which bucrania were found. In phase E, corresponding to the Uruk III period (ca. 3000 BC), the White Temple was built. The White Temple could be seen from a great distance across the plain of Sumer, as it was elevated 21 m and covered in gypsum plaster which reflected sunlight like a mirror. For this reason it is believed the White Temple is a symbol of Uruk's political power at the time.[citation needed] In addition to this temple the Anu Ziggurat had a monumental limestone-paved staircase, which was used in religious processions. A trough running parallel to the staircase was used to drain the ziggurat.
Eanna District
The Eanna district is historically significant as both writing and monumental public architecture emerged here during Uruk periods VI–IV. The combination of these two developments places Eanna as arguably the first true city and civilization in human history. Eanna during period IVa contains the earliest examples of cuneiform writing and possibly the earliest writing in history. Although some of these cuneiform tablets have been deciphered, difficulty with site excavations has obscured the purpose and sometimes even the structure of many buildings.
The first building of Eanna, Stone-Cone Temple (Mosaic Temple), was built in period VI over a preexisting Ubaid temple and is enclosed by a limestone wall with an elaborate system of buttresses. The Stone-Cone Temple, named for the mosaic of colored stone cones driven into the adobe brick façade, may be the earliest water cult in Mesopotamia. It was ritually demolished in Uruk IVb period and its contents interred in the Riemchen Building.
In the following period, Uruk V, about 100 m east of the Stone-Cone Temple the Limestone Temple was built on a 2 m high rammed-earth podium over a pre-existing Ubaid temple, which like the Stone-Cone Temple represents a continuation of Ubaid culture. However, the Limestone Temple was unprecedented for its size and use of stone, a clear departure from traditional Ubaid architecture. The stone was quarried from an outcrop at Umayyad about 60 km east of Uruk. It is unclear if the entire temple or just the foundation was built of this limestone. The Limestone temple is probably the first Inanna temple, but it is impossible to know with certainty. Like the Stone-Cone temple the Limestone temple was also covered in cone mosaics. Both of these temples were rectangles with their corners aligned to the cardinal directions, a central hall flanked along the long axis flanked by two smaller halls, and buttressed façades; the prototype of all future Mesopotamian temple architectural typology.
Between these two monumental structures a complex of buildings (called A–C, E–K, Riemchen, Cone-Mosaic), courts, and walls was built during Eanna IVb. These buildings were built during a time of great expansion in Uruk as the city grew to 250 hectares and established long-distance trade, and are a continuation of architecture from the previous period. The Riemchen Building, named for the 16×16 cm brick shape called Riemchen by the Germans, is a memorial with a ritual fire kept burning in the center for the Stone-Cone Temple after it was destroyed. For this reason, Uruk IV period represents a reorientation of belief and culture. The facade of this memorial may have been covered in geometric and figural murals. The Riemchen bricks first used in this temple were used to construct all buildings of Uruk IV period Eanna. The use of colored cones as a façade treatment was greatly developed as well, perhaps used to greatest effect in the Cone-Mosaic Temple. Composed of three parts: Temple N, the Round Pillar Hall, and the Cone-Mosaic Courtyard, this temple was the most monumental structure of Eanna at the time. They were all ritually destroyed and the entire Eanna district was rebuilt in period IVa at an even grander scale.
During Eanna IVa, the Limestone Temple was demolished and the Red Temple built on its foundations. The accumulated debris of the Uruk IVb buildings were formed into a terrace, the L-Shaped Terrace, on which Buildings C, D, M, Great Hall, and Pillar Hall were built. Building E was initially thought to be a palace, but later proven to be a communal building. Also in period IV, the Great Court, a sunken courtyard surrounded by two tiers of benches covered in cone mosaic, was built. A small aqueduct drains into the Great Courtyard, which may have irrigated a garden at one time. The impressive buildings of this period were built as Uruk reached its zenith and expanded to 600 hectares. All the buildings of Eanna IVa were destroyed sometime in Uruk III, for unclear reasons.[citation needed]
The architecture of Eanna in period III was very different from what had preceded it. The complex of monumental temples was replaced with baths around the Great Courtyard and the labyrinthine Rammed-Earth Building. This period corresponds to Early Dynastic Sumer c. 2900 BC, a time of great social upheaval when the dominance of Uruk was eclipsed by competing city-states. The fortress-like architecture of this time is a reflection of that turmoil. The temple of Inanna continued functioning during this time in a new form and under a new name, 'The House of Inanna in Uruk' (Sumerian: e2-dinanna unuki-ga). The location of this structure is currently unknown.[12]
Uruk into Late Antiquity
Although it had been a thriving city in Early Dynastic Sumer, especially Early Dynastic II, Uruk was ultimately annexed by the Akkadian Empire and went into decline. Later, in the Neo-Sumerian period, Uruk enjoyed revival as a major economic and cultural center under the sovereignty of Ur. The Eanna District was restored as part of an ambitious building program, which included a new temple for Inanna. This temple included a ziggurat, the 'House of the Universe' (Cuneiform: E2.SAR.A) to the northeast of the Uruk period Eanna ruins.
The ziggurat is also cited as Ur-Nammu Ziggurat for its builder Ur-Nammu. Following the collapse of Ur (c. 2000 BC), Uruk went into a steep decline until about 850 BC when the Neo-Assyrian Empire annexed it as a provincial capital. Under the Neo-Assyrians and Neo-Babylonians, Uruk regained much of its former glory. By 250 BC, a new temple complex the 'Head Temple' (Akkadian: Bīt Reš) was added to northeast of the Uruk period Anu district. The Bīt Reš along with the Esagila was one of the two main centers of Neo-Babylonian astronomy. All of the temples and canals were restored again under Nabopolassar. During this era, Uruk was divided into five main districts: the Adad Temple, Royal Orchard, Ištar Gate, Lugalirra Temple, and Šamaš Gate districts.[19]
Uruk, known as Orcha (Ὄρχα) to the Greeks, continued to thrive under the Seleucid Empire. During this period, Uruk was a city of 300 hectares and perhaps 40,000 inhabitants.[19][20][21] In 200 BC, the 'Great Sanctuary' (Cuneiform: E2.IRI12.GAL, Sumerian: eš-gal) of Ishtar was added between the Anu and Eanna districts. The ziggurat of the temple of Anu, which was rebuilt in this period, was the largest ever built in Mesopotamia.[21] When the Seleucids lost Mesopotamia to the Parthians in 141 BC, Uruk again entered a period of decline from which it never recovered. The decline of Uruk may have been in part caused by a shift in the Euphrates River. By 300 AD, Uruk was mostly abandoned, but a group of Mandaeans settled there,[22] and by c. 700 AD it was completely abandoned.
Political History
"In Uruk, in southern Mesopotamia, Sumerian civilization seems to have reached its creative peak. This is pointed out repeatedly in the references to this city in religious and, especially, in literary texts, including those of mythological content; the historical tradition as preserved in the Sumerian king-list confirms it. From Uruk the center of political gravity seems to have moved to Ur."
—Oppenheim[26]
Uruk played a very important part in the political history of Sumer. Starting from the Early Uruk period, the city exercised hegemony over nearby settlements. At this time (c. 3800 BC), there were two centers of 20 hectares, Uruk in the south and Nippur in the north surrounded by much smaller 10 hectare settlements.[27] Later, in the Late Uruk period, its sphere of influence extended over all Sumer and beyond to external colonies in upper Mesopotamia and Syria. Uruk was prominent in the national struggles of the Sumerians against the Elamites up to 2004 BC, in which it suffered severely; recollections of some of these conflicts are embodied in the Gilgamesh epic, in the literary and courtly form.
The recorded chronology of rulers over Uruk includes both mythological and historic figures in five dynasties. As in the rest of Sumer, power moved progressively from the temple to the palace. Rulers from the Early Dynastic period exercised control over Uruk and at times over all of Sumer. In myth, kingship was lowered from heaven to Eridu then passed successively through five cities until the deluge which ended the Uruk period. Afterwards, kingship passed to Kish at the beginning of the Early Dynastic period, which corresponds to the beginning of the Early Bronze Age in Sumer. In the Early Dynastic I period (2900–2800 BC), Uruk was in theory under the control of Kish. This period is sometimes called the Golden Age. During the Early Dynastic II period (2800–2600 BC), Uruk was again the dominant city exercising control of Sumer. This period is the time of the First Dynasty of Uruk sometimes called the Heroic Age. However, by the Early Dynastic IIIa period (2600–2500 BC) Uruk had lost sovereignty, this time to Ur. This period, corresponding to the Early Bronze Age III, is the end of the First Dynasty of Uruk. In the Early Dynastic IIIb period (2500–2334 BC), also called the Pre-Sargonic period (referring to Sargon of Akkad[28]), Uruk continued to be ruled by Ur.
Early Dynastic, Akkadian, and Neo-Sumerian Rulers of Uruk
Dynastic categorizations are described solely from the Sumerian King List, which is of problematic historical accuracy;[30][31] the organization might be analogous to Manetho's.
In 2009, two different copies of an inscription were put forth as evidence of a 19th-century BC ruler of Uruk named Naram-sin[32]
Uruk continued as principality of Ur, Babylon, and later Achaemenid, Seleucid, and Parthian Empires. It enjoyed brief periods of independence during the Isin-Larsa period, under kings such as (possibly) Ikūn-pî-Ištar (c. 1800 BC), Sîn-kāšid, his son Sîn-irībam, his son Sîn-gāmil, Ilum-gāmil, brother of Sîn-gāmil, Etēia, Anam, ÌR-ne-ne, who was defeated by Rīm-Sîn I of Larsa in his year 14 (c. 1740 BC), Rīm-Anum and Nabi-ilīšu.[33] It is now believed that another king, Narām-Sîn, briefly ruled before Sîn-kāšid.[34] The city was finally destroyed by the Arab invasion of Mesopotamia and abandoned c. 700 AD.[citation needed]
Architecture
Uruk has some of the first monumental constructions in architectural history, and certainly the largest of its era. Much of Near Eastern architecture can trace its roots to these prototypical buildings. The structures of Uruk are cited by two different naming conventions, one in German from the initial expedition, and the English translation of the same. The stratigraphy of the site is complex and as such much of the dating is disputed. In general, the structures follow the two main typologies of Sumerian architecture, Tripartite with 3 parallel halls and T-Shaped also with three halls, but the central one extends into two perpendicular bays at one end. The following table summarizes the significant architecture of the Eanna and Anu Districts.[35] Temple N, Cone-Mosaic Courtyard, and Round Pillar Hall are often referred to as a single structure; the Cone-Mosaic Temple.
Eanna district: 4000–2000 BC | ||||||
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
Structure name | German name | Period | Typology | Material | Area in m2 | |
Stone-Cone Temple | Steinstifttempel | Uruk VI | T-shaped | Limestone and bitumen | x | |
Limestone Temple | Kalksteintempel | Uruk V | T-shaped | Limestone and bitumen | 2373 | |
Riemchen Building | Riemchengebäude | Uruk IVb | unique | Adobe brick | x | |
Cone-Mosaic Temple | Stiftmosaikgebäude | Uruk IVb | unique | x | x | |
Temple A | Gebäude A | Uruk IVb | Tripartite | Adobe brick | 738 | |
Temple B | Gebäude B | Uruk IVb | Tripartite | Adobe brick | 338 | |
Temple C | Gebäude C | Uruk IVb | T-shaped | Adobe brick | 1314 | |
Temple/Palace E | Gebäude E | Uruk IVb | unique | Adobe brick | 2905 | |
Temple F | Gebäude F | Uruk IVb | T-shaped | Adobe brick | 465 | |
Temple G | Gebäude G | Uruk IVb | T-shaped | Adobe brick | 734 | |
Temple H | Gebäude H | Uruk IVb | T-shaped | Adobe brick | 628 | |
Temple D | Gebäude D | Uruk IVa | T-shaped | Adobe brick | 2596 | |
Room I | Gebäude I | Uruk V | x | x | x | |
Temple J | Gebäude J | Uruk IVb | x | Adobe brick | x | |
Temple K | Gebäude K | Uruk IVb | x | Adobe brick | x | |
Temple L | Gebäude L | Uruk V | x | x | x | |
Temple M | Gebäude M | Uruk IVa | x | Adobe brick | x | |
Temple N | Gebäude N | Uruk IVb | unique | Adobe brick | x | |
Temple O | Gebäude O | x | x | x | x | |
Hall Building/Great Hall | Hallenbau | Uruk IVa | unique | Adobe brick | 821 | |
Pillar Hall | Pfeilerhalle | Uruk IVa | unique | x | 219 | |
Bath Building | Bäder | Uruk III | unique | x | x | |
Red Temple | Roter Tempel | Uruk IVa | x | Adobe brick | x | |
Great Court | Großer Hof | Uruk IVa | unique | Burnt Brick | 2873 | |
Rammed-Earth Building | Stampflehm | Uruk III | unique | x | x | |
Round Pillar Hall | Rundpeifeilerhalle | Uruk IVb | unique | Adobe brick | x | |
Anu district: 4000–2000 BC | ||||||
Stone Building | Steingebäude | Uruk VI | unique | Limestone and bitumen | x | |
White Temple | x | Uruk III | Tripartite | Adobe brick | 382 |
It is clear Eanna was dedicated to Inanna symbolized by Venus from the Uruk period. At that time, she was worshipped in four aspects as Inanna of the netherworld (Sumerian: dinanna-kur), Inanna of the morning (Sumerian: dinanna-hud2), Inanna of the evening (Sumerian: dinanna-sig), and Inanna (Sumerian: dinanna-NUN).[12] The names of four temples in Uruk at this time are known, but it is impossible to match them with either a specific structure and in some cases a deity.[12]
- sanctuary of Inanna (Sumerian: eš-dinanna)
- sanctuary of Inanna of the evening (Sumerian: eš-dinanna-sig)
- temple of heaven (Sumerian: e2-an)
- temple of heaven and netherworld (Sumerian: e2-an-ki)
Archaeology
The site, which lies about 50 mi (80 km) northwest of ancient Ur, is one of the largest in the region at around 5.5 km2 (2.1 sq mi) in area. The maximum extent is 3 km (1.9 mi) north/south, and 2.5 km (1.6 mi) east/west. There are three major tells within the site: The Eanna district, Bit Resh (Kullaba), and Irigal.
The location of Uruk was first scouted by William Loftus in 1849. He excavated there in 1850 and 1854. By Loftus' own account, he admits that the first excavations were superficial at best, as his financiers forced him to deliver large museum artifacts at a minimal cost.[36] Warka was also scouted by archaeologist Walter Andrae in 1902.[37]
From 1912 to 1913, Julius Jordan and his team from the German Oriental Society discovered the temple of Ishtar, one of four known temples located at the site. The temples at Uruk were quite remarkable as they were constructed with brick and adorned with colorful mosaics. Jordan also discovered part of the city wall. It was later discovered that this 40-to-50-foot (12 to 15 m) high brick wall, probably utilized as a defense mechanism, totally encompassed the city at a length of 9 km (5.6 mi). Utilizing sedimentary strata dating techniques, this wall is estimated to have been erected around 3000 BC.
The GOS returned to Uruk in 1928 and excavated until 1939, when World War II intervened. The team was led by Jordan until 1931, then by A. Nöldeke, Ernst Heinrich, and H. J. Lenzen.[38][39]
The German excavations resumed after the war and were under the direction of Heinrich Lenzen from 1953 to 1967.[40][41][42] He was followed in 1968 by J. Schmidt, and in 1978 by R.M. Boehmer.[43][44] In total, the German archaeologists spent 39 seasons working at Uruk. The results are documented in two series of reports:
- Ausgrabungen der Deutschen Forschungsgemeinschaft in Uruk (ADFU), 17 volumes, 1912–2001 (titles listed at the German Archaeological Institute Index 38e378adbb1f14a174490017f0000011)
- Ausgrabungen in Uruk-Warka, Endberichte (AUWE), 25 volumes, 1987–2007 (titles listed at the German Archaeological Institute Index 108)
Most recently, from 2001 to 2002, the German Archaeological Institute team led by Margarete van Ess, with Joerg Fassbinder and Helmut Becker, conducted a partial magnetometer survey in Uruk. In addition to the geophysical survey, core samples and aerial photographs were taken. This was followed up with high-resolution satellite imagery in 2005.[45] Work resumed in 2016 and is currently concentrated on the city wall area and a survey of the surrounding landscape.[46][47][48]
Cuneiform Tablets
Proto-cuneiform clay tablets were found at Uruk with Sumerian and pictorial inscriptions that are thought to be some of the earliest recorded writing, dating to approximately 3300 BC.[49][50] Later cuneiform tablets were deciphered and include the famous SKL, a record of kings of the Sumerian civilization. There was an even larger cache of legal and scholarly tablets of the Neo-Babylonian, Late Babylonian, and Seleucid period, that have been published by Adam Falkenstein and other Assyriological members of the German Archaeological Institute in Baghdad as Jan J. A. Djik,[51] Hermann Hunger, Antoine Cavigneaux, Egbert von Weiher,[52][53][54][55] and Karlheinz Kessler, or others as Erlend Gehlken.[56][57] Many of the cuneiform tablets form acquisitions by museums and collections as the British Museum, Yale Babylonian Collection, and the Louvre. The later holds a unique cuneiform tablet in Aramaic known as the Aramaic Uruk incantation.
The oldest known writing to feature a person's name was found in Uruk, in the form of several tablets that mention Kushim, who (assuming they are an individual person) served as an accountant recording transactions made in trading barley – 29,086 measures barley 37 months Kushim.[58]
Beveled rim bowls were the most common type of container used during the Uruk period. They are believed to be vessels for serving rations of food or drink to dependent laborers. The introduction of the fast wheel for throwing pottery was developed during the later part of the Uruk period, and made the mass production of pottery simpler and more standardized.[59]
Artifacts
The Mask of Warka, also known as the 'Lady of Uruk' and the 'Sumerian Mona Lisa', dating from 3100 BC, is one of the earliest representations of the human face. The carved marble female face is probably a depiction of Inanna. It is approximately 20 cm tall, and may have been incorporated into a larger cult image. The mask was looted from the Iraq Museum during the fall of Baghdad in April 2003. It was recovered in September 2003 and returned to the museum.
Lugal-kisalsi, king of Uruk
Bull sculpture, Jemdet Nasr period, c. 3000 BC
List of rulers of Uruk
The following list should not be considered complete:
Portrait or inscription | Ruler | Approximated dates | Notes and references |
---|---|---|---|
Prehistoric Uruk (r. c. 4000 – c. 3400 BC) | |||
Priest-kings | r. c. 4000 – 3400 BC | Various priest-kings of Uruk are represented in reliefs, statues or cylinders, but their names are not known.[citation needed] | |
Portrait or inscription | Ruler | Approximated dates | Notes and references |
First dynasty of Uruk | |||
Meshkiangasher | Uncertain; these rulers may have r. c. 3400 – c. 2900 BC sometime during the Late Uruk and/or Jemdet Nasr period(s). | Son of the god Utu and founder of Uruk who received kingship from the 1st Dynasty of Kish. | |
Enmerkar | Led an assault on the city of Arrata. | ||
Lugalbanda | A soldier in the army of Enmerkar. | ||
Dumuzid | Defeated invading forces headed by Gudam? | ||
Gilgamesh | Uncertain; these rulers may have r. c. 2900 – c. 2500 BC sometime during the Early Dynastic (ED) I and/or II period(s). | Built the walls of Uruk and defeated Aga of Kish. | |
Ur-Nungal | Little is known of these rulers; the existence of most is unconfirmed. | ||
Udul-kalama | |||
La-ba'shum | |||
En-nun-tarah-ana | |||
Mesh-he | |||
Melem-ana | |||
Lugal-kitun | |||
Lumma | Uncertain; these rulers may have r. c. 2500 – c. 2450 BC sometime during the ED IIIa period.[60] | ||
Ursangpae | |||
Portrait or inscription | Ruler | Approximated dates | Notes and references |
Second dynasty of Uruk | |||
Lugalnamniršumma | Uncertain; these rulers may have r. c. 2500 – c. 2350 BC sometime during the ED IIIb period.[60] |
| |
Lugalsilâsi I | Assaulted Girsu on ten separate occasions.[61] | ||
Urzage |
| ||
Lugal-kinishe-dudu | King of Uruk and Ur. | ||
Lugal-kisal-si | King of Uruk and Ur. | ||
Lugalsilâsi II |
| ||
Urni |
| ||
Enshakushanna | Uncertain; may have r. c. 2350 – c. 2334 BC sometime during the ED IIIb, Proto-Imperial, and/or Akkadian period(s). | Established kingship over most of Sumer; his kingdom was taken by Lugalzagesi. | |
Portrait or inscription | Ruler | Approximated dates | Notes and references |
Third dynasty of Uruk | |||
Lugalzagesi | Uncertain; may have r. c. 2350 – c. 2154 BC sometime during the EDIIIb, Proto-Imperial, and/or Akkadian period(s).[60] | Originally of Umma, he made Uruk his new capital after conquering all Sumer. Defeated Urukagina of Lagash and was in turn defeated by Sargon of Akkad.[62] | |
Girimesi |
| ||
Portrait or inscription | Ruler | Approximated dates | Notes and references |
Fourth dynasty of Uruk | |||
Ur-nigin | Uncertain; these rulers may have r. c. 2334 – c. 2119 BC sometime during the Akkadian and/or Gutian period(s). | May have served as ensis of Uruk under the Akkadian empire. Known from the SKL; very little otherwise. | |
Ur-gigir | |||
Kuda | |||
Puzur-ili | |||
Ur-Utu | |||
Portrait or inscription | Ruler | Approximated dates | Notes and references |
Fifth dynasty of Uruk | |||
Utu-hengal | Uncertain; may have r. c. 2154 – c. 2112 BC sometime during the Gutian and/or Ur III period(s). | An ensi of Uruk who overthrew the Gutians and briefly ruled Sumer until he was succeeded by Ur-Nammu, who he had appointed governor of Ur, thus ending the final Sumerian dynasty of Uruk.[63] |
See also
Notes
Of the primeval cities founded by Nimrod, the son of Gush, four are represented, in Genesis x. 10, as giving origin to the rest : — 'And the beginning of his kingdom was Babel, and Erech, and Accad, and Galneh, in the land of Shinar.' ...let us see if there be any site which will correspond with the biblical Erech — the second city of Nimrod. About 120 miles southeast of Babylon, are some enormous piles of mounds, which, from their name and importance, appear at once to justify their claim to consideration. The name of Warka is derivable from Erech without unnecessary contortion. The original Hebrew word 'Erk,' or 'Ark,' is transformed into 'Warka,' either by changing the aleph into vau, or by simply prefixing the vau for the sake of euphony, as is customary in the conversion of Hebrew names to Arabic. If any dependence can be placed upon the derivation of modern from ancient names, this is more worthy of credence than most others of like nature.... Sir Henry Rawlinson states his belief that Warka is Erech, and in this he is supported by concurrent testimony.... [Footnote: See page xvi. of the Twenty-ninth Annual Report of the Royal Asiatic Society, 1852 ; and Proceedings of the Royal Geogr. Society, vol. i., page 47]
- C.J Gadd, A Sumerian reading-book, The Clarendon Press, 1924
References
- Baker, H.D. "The Urban Landscape in First Millennium BC Babylonia". University of Vienna.
- Beaulieu, Paul-Alain (2003). The Pantheon of Uruk During the Neo-Babylonian Period. BRILL. p. 424. ISBN 90-04-13024-1.
- Charvát, Petr; Zainab Bahrani; Marc Van de Mieroop (2002). Mesopotamia Before History. London: Routledge. p. 281. ISBN 0-415-25104-4.
- Crawford, Harriet E. W. (2004). Sumer and the Sumerians. Cambridge University Press. pp. 252. ISBN 0-521-53338-4.
- Fassbinder, J.W.E., and H. Becker, Magnetometry at Uruk (Iraq): The city of King Gilgamesh, Archaeologia Polona, vol. 41, pp. 122–124, 2003
- Harmansah, Ömür (2007-12-03). "The Archaeology of Mesopotamia: Ceremonial centers, urbanization and state formation in Southern Mesopotamia". Archived from the original on 2012-07-12. Retrieved 2011-08-28.
- Oppenheim, A. Leo; Erica Reiner (1977). Ancient Mesopotamia: Portrait of a Dead Civilization. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. pp. 445. ISBN 0-226-63187-7.
Ancient Mesopotamia: Portrait of a Dead Civilization.
Further reading
- Green, MW (1984). "The Uruk Lament". Journal of the American Oriental Society. 104 (2): 253–279. doi:10.2307/602171. JSTOR 602171.
- Kuhrt, Amélie (1995). The Ancient Near East. London: Routledge. p. 782. ISBN 0-415-16763-9.
- Liverani, Mario; Zainab Bahrani; Marc Van de Mieroop (2006). Uruk: The First City. London: Equinox Publishing. p. 97. ISBN 1-84553-191-4.
- Lloyd, Seton (1955). Foundations in the Dust. New York, New York: Penguin Books. p. 217. ISBN 0-500-05038-4.
- Postgate, J.N. (1994). Early Mesopotamia, Society and Economy at the Dawn of History. New York, New York: Routledge Publishing. p. 367. ISBN 0-415-00843-3.
- Rothman, Mitchell S. (2001). Uruk, Mesopotamia & Its Neighbors. Santa Fe: School of American Research Press. p. 556. ISBN 1-930618-03-4.
- Krystyna Szarzyńska, Observations on the Temple Precinct EŠ3 in Archaic Uruk, Journal of Cuneiform Studies, vol. 63, pp. 1–4, 2011
- Vos, Howard F. (1977). Archaeology in Bible Lands. Chicago, Illinois: Moody Press. p. 399. ISBN 978-0-8024-0293-6.
- Eva Strommenger, The Chronological Division of the Archaic Levels of Uruk-Eanna VI to III/II: Past and Present, American Journal of Archaeology, vol. 84, no. 4, pp. 479–487, (Oct., 1980)
External Links
- Archaeologists unearth ancient Sumerian riverboat in Iraq – Ars Technica – 4/8/2022
- News from Old Uruk – Margarete van Ess 2021 Oriental Institute lecture on recent work
- Earliest evidence for large scale organized warfare in the Mesopotamian world (Hamoukar vs. Uruk?)
- Uruk at CDLI wiki
- Lament for Unug (in Sumerian)
- Archaeological Expedition Mapping Ancient City Of Uruk in 2002
- [http://cdli.ucla.edu/search/search_results.php?SearchMode=Text&PrimaryPublication=&MuseumNumber=&Provenience=uruk&Period=&TextSearch=&ObjectID=&requestFrom=Submit Digital images of tablets from Uruk –
CDLI]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Uruk
La Fin de Satan ("The End of Satan", 1886) is a long religious epic by Victor Hugo, of which 5,700 lines were written between 1854 and 1862, but left unfinished and published after his death.
When it was rejected by his publisher in 1857, Hugo tried to integrate it into Petites Epopées (later La Légende des siècles), eventually announcing that it would form a companion work, along with Dieu. His intention, apparently, was to invest the storming of the Bastille with a religious significance; after making various efforts, he ceased work on it in 1862 and returned to novels. There are many gaps large and small.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/La_Fin_de_Satan
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Category:Nimrod
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Bal%C4%B1kl%C4%B1g%C3%B6l
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Tower_of_Babel
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/The_Two_Babylons
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Uruk
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/akhal-teke
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Uralic
The first plausible mention of a people speaking a Uralic language is in Tacitus's Germania (c. 98 AD),[9] mentioning the Fenni (usually interpreted as referring to the Sami) and two other possibly Uralic tribes living in the farthest reaches of Scandinavia.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Uralic_languages
Olof Rudbeck d.y. (1660–1740). Oil-painted portrait in Uppsala University's Universitethuset
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Olof_Rudbeck_the_Younger
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Uppsala
Coronation of King Gustav II
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Bradt
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kiliaen_van_Rensselaer_(merchant)
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Albert_Andriessen_Bradt
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Category:1686_deaths
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/clone
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Jacob_Allestry
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Christ_Church,_Oxford
https://en.wikipedia.org/w/index.php?search=pembreys&title=Special%3ASearch&ns0=1
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Court_Farm,_Pembrey
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Jacobins
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Jacobean_architecture
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/English_Baroque_architecture
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Palladian_architecture#English_Palladian_architecture
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/William_and_Mary_style
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Georgian_architecture
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Queen_Anne_style_architecture
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Rococco
51°30′49″N 0°05′53″WCoordinates: 51°30′49″N 0°05′53″W | |
Location | London, EC4 |
---|---|
Country | United Kingdom |
Denomination | Church of England |
Previous denomination | Roman Catholicism |
Website | stpauls.co.uk |
History | |
Status | Active |
Consecrated | 1697 |
Architecture | |
Heritage designation | Grade I Listed |
Previous cathedrals | 4 |
Architect(s) | Sir Christopher Wren |
Style | English Baroque |
Years built | 1675–1710 |
Groundbreaking | 1675 |
Completed | 1710 |
Specifications | |
Length | 518 ft (158 m) |
Nave width | 121 ft (37 m) |
Width across transepts | 246 ft (75 m) |
Height | 365 ft (111 m) |
Dome height (outer) | 278 ft (85 m) |
Dome height (inner) | 225 ft (69 m) |
Dome diameter (outer) | 112 ft (34 m) |
Dome diameter (inner) | 102 ft (31 m) |
Number of towers | 2 |
Tower height | 221 ft (67 m) |
Administration | |
Province | Canterbury |
Diocese | London (since 604) |
Clergy | |
Bishop(s) | Sarah Mullally |
Dean | Andrew Tremlett |
Precentor | James Milne |
Chancellor | Paula Gooder (lay reader) |
Canon Treasurer | vacant |
Laity | |
Director of music | Andrew Carwood |
Organist(s) | William Fox (acting) |
St Paul's Cathedral is an Anglican cathedral in London, England, and is the seat of the Bishop of London. The cathedral serves as the mother church of the Diocese of London. It is on Ludgate Hill at the highest point of the City of London and is a Grade I listed building. Its dedication to Paul the Apostle dates back to the original church on this site, founded in AD 604.[1] The present structure, dating from the late 17th century, was designed in the English Baroque style by Sir Christopher Wren. Its construction, completed in Wren's lifetime, was part of a major rebuilding programme in the city after the Great Fire of London.[2] The earlier Gothic cathedral (Old St Paul's Cathedral), largely destroyed in the Great Fire, was a central focus for medieval and early modern London, including Paul's walk and St Paul's Churchyard, being the site of St Paul's Cross.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/St_Paul%27s_Cathedral
Liverpool Cathedral | |
---|---|
Cathedral Church of Christ in Liverpool | |
53°23′51″N 2°58′23″WCoordinates: 53°23′51″N 2°58′23″W | |
Location | Liverpool |
Country | United Kingdom |
Denomination | Church of England |
Tradition | Central churchmanship |
Website | www |
History | |
Dedication | Christ |
Architecture | |
Architect(s) | Sir Giles Gilbert Scott |
Style | Gothic Revival |
Years built | 1904–1978 |
Specifications | |
Length | 188.67 m (619.0 ft) |
Nave height | 35.3 m (116 ft) |
Choir height | 35.3 m (116 ft) |
Number of towers | 1 |
Tower height | 100.8 m (331 ft)1 |
Bells | 14 |
Tenor bell weight | 82-0-11 (4171kg) in A♭ |
Administration | |
Province | York |
Diocese | Liverpool (since 1880) |
Clergy | |
Bishop(s) | John Perumbalath |
Dean | Sue Jones |
Precentor | Philip Anderson |
Canon Chancellor | Ellen Loudon (Dir. Social Justice) |
Canon(s) | Mike Kirby (Scientist) |
Canon Missioner | Neal Barnes |
Laity | |
Director of music | Stephen Mannings |
Organist(s) | Ian Tracey; Daniel Bishop (Associate Organist) |
Liverpool Cathedral is the Cathedral of the Anglican Diocese of Liverpool, built on St James's Mount in Liverpool, and the seat of the Bishop of Liverpool. It may be referred to as the Cathedral Church of Christ in Liverpool (as recorded in the Document of Consecration) or the Cathedral Church of the Risen Christ, Liverpool, being dedicated to Christ 'in especial remembrance of His most glorious Resurrection'.[1] Liverpool Cathedral is the largest cathedral and religious building in Britain,[2] and the eighth largest church in the world.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Liverpool_Cathedral
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/St_John%27s,_Smith_Square
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/St_Stephen%27s_Church,_Rochester_Row
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Klais_Orgelbau
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Czech_Baroque_architecture
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Maltese_Baroque_architecture
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Petrine_Baroque
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/English_Baroque_architecture
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Churrigueresque
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Elizabethan_Baroque
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/New_Spanish_Baroque
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Siberian_Baroque
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ukrainian_Baroque
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Baroque_in_Poland#/media/File:Pl-gdansk-kaplica-krolewska-2006.jpg
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Naryshkin_Baroque
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Dutch_Baroque_architecture
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Firefighting
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Mine
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Transport
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Rail_transport
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Heavy_Equipment_Transport_System
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ouadane
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Mali_Empire
A vardo (also wag(g)on, living wagon, van, and caravan) is a traditional horse-drawn wagon used by British Romanichal Travellers as their home. A vardo must have four wheels, with two being used for steering. The vehicle is typically highly decorated, intricately carved, brightly painted, and even gilded. The Romanichal Traveller tradition of the vardo is seen as a high cultural point of both artistic design and a masterpiece of woodcrafter's art.[1]
The heyday of the caravan lasted for roughly 70 years, from the mid-nineteenth century through the first two decades of the twentieth century. Not used for year-round living today, they are shown at the cultural gatherings held throughout the year, the best known of which is Appleby Horse Fair in the town of Appleby-in-Westmorland in Cumbria, North West England.[2]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Vardo_(Romani_wagon)
Other names |
|
---|---|
Country of origin | Ireland, United Kingdom |
Traits | |
Distinguishing features | Cob conformation, often piebald or skewbald, feathered heels |
Breed standards | |
The Gypsy Cob, also known as the Traditional Gypsy Cob, Irish Cob, Romani Cob, Gypsy Horse or Gypsy Vanner, is a type or breed of domestic horse from the islands Great Britain and Ireland. It is a small, solidly-built horse of cob conformation and is often, but not always, piebald or skewbald; it is particularly associated with Irish Travellers and English Romanichal Travellers of Ireland and Great Britain. There was no stud-book or breed registry for horses of this type until 1996,[1]: 58 but as breeders developed standards and recorded pedigrees, there are now organizations that register qualifying horses.[1]: 58 [a].
From about 1850, travelling people in the British Isles began to use a distinct type of horse to pull their vardos, the caravans in which they had just begun to live and travel. The color and look of the breed were refined in the years after the Second World War. Horses of this type were first exported to the United States in 1996.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Gypsy_horse
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Vardo_(Romani_wagon)
These smaller wagons were called "vardo" in the Romani language (originating from the Ossetic word vurdon) for cart.[16] The Romani vardo evolved into some of the most advanced forms of travelling wagon, and are prized for their practicality as well as aesthetic design and beauty. There is no more iconic or recognizable Romani symbol than a highly decorated Romanichal vardo, and the time of its use is often affectionately called "the wagon time" by Romanichal travellers. The vardos were typically commissioned by families or by a newlywed couple from specialist coach builders. Building the vardo took between six months to a year; a variety of woods including oak, ash, elm, cedar, and pine were utilized in its construction. Prized by the Romani, and later by non-Romani, including other traveller groups, for their practicality as well as aesthetic beauty, vardos can be categorized into six main styles; these being the Brush wagon, Reading, Ledge, Bow Top, Open lot, and Burton. The general design evolved over time and were named after the home's owners, for their traditional style (Ledge), for the town of its construction (Reading), or for the name of the builder.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Vardo_(Romani_wagon)
Much of the wealth of the vardo was on display in the carvings, which incorporated aspects of the Romani lifestyle such as horses and dogs, as well as stock decorative designs of birds, lions, griffins, flowers, vines and elaborate scrollwork. Carved details were often accented with gold, either painted or, in the most expensive wagons, the use of between 4-15 books of gold leaf applied as decoration.[15] Many individual makers were identified by their particular designs.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Vardo_(Romani_wagon)
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Appleby-in-Westmorland
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/National_Heritage_List_for_England
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ancient_Monuments_Protection_Act_1882
Category:Romani culture
Subcategories
This category has the following 12 subcategories, out of 12 total.
C
- Romani cuisine (19 P)
D
- Romani dances (7 P)
F
- Romani folklore (2 C, 7 P)
L
- Romani literature (1 C, 1 P)
M
- Romani music (6 C, 12 P)
R
- Romani religion (5 C, 7 P)
S
- Romani surnames (2 P)
Pages in category "Romani culture"
The following 27 pages are in this category, out of 27 total. This list may not reflect recent changes.
K
R
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Category:Romani_culture
Part of a series on |
Romani people |
---|
|
Romani people by sub-group |
---|
|
Romani diaspora by country |
---|
Romani dress is the traditional attire of the Romani people, widely known in English by the exonymic slur Gypsies.[a] Romani traditional clothing is closely connected to the history, culture, and national identity of the Roma people.[2][3]
Certain scholars connect similarities of Romani dress with South Asian populations due to the general consensus of the South Asian origins[b] of Romani people. However, they also note that there are many differences as well, which is indicative of the contact Romani people have had with various other groups. Because of this, Romani dress can vary drastically among different tribes, however, there are certain constant similarities that define Romani dress as a whole. Romani people are often recognizable to other Roma through their appearance and cultural dress codes. Moreover, Romani people value the outwardly display of their wealth and prosperity which is reflective in their traditional dress.[2]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Romani_dress
Romani people by sub-group |
---|
|
Romani diaspora by country |
---|
The title King of the Gypsies has been claimed or given over the centuries to many different people. It is both culturally and geographically specific. It may be inherited, acquired by acclamation or action, or simply claimed. The extent of the power associated with the title varied; it might be limited to a small group in a specific place, or many people over large areas. In some cases the claim was clearly a public-relations exercise. As the term Gypsy is also used in many different ways, the King of the Gypsies may be someone with no connection with the Romani.
It has also been suggested that in places where their crimes were prosecuted closely by local authorities the "King of the Gypsies" is an individual, usually of low standing, who places himself in the risky position of an ad hoc liaison between the Romani and the "gadje" (non-Romani). The arrest of such a "King" limited the criminal liability of the Romani.[1]
Bulgaria
Mustafa Shibil
Mustafa Shibil (killed in 1856),[2] a Muslim Roma, claimed the title during his time in the Balkan Mountains near Sliven during and after the Crimean War.
The Gypsy King is associated with mythical powers of being able to part water with his sword, a spade, and his head, after it had been cut off, according to tales collected in 1981 from the Romani people in Bulgaria.[3]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/King_of_the_Gypsies
Kris (Romani: kris) or Kris-Romani is a traditional court for conflict resolution in the culture of Vlax branch of the Romani people. The term derives from the Greek language, "κρίση" (judgment). It is a key institution for enforcing the Romani Code (Romani: romano zakono; zakonuri) within Romanipen. It developed in the area of present-day Romania, during the times of the slavery, as a judicial institution of the local Romanies, in order to enforce the community cohesion and its internal balance. After the abolition, from the half of the 19th century onwards, many Vlax Romanies emigrated in the rest of the world, bringing with them the kris as part of their cultural luggage. More or less formal proceedings exist also among other Romani branches. Some non-Vlax Romanies adopted this institution, like the Drzara from Sweden (originally from Serbia), in contact with the local Kalderash.[1]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kris_(Romani_court)
The judgements of the kris are designed to maintain the integrity of the Romani community and uphold the Romanipen. Its proceedings are oriented to reinforce the kintala (balance), an important notion of the Romanipen. Considering that there is no absolute truth (as a shame society, in contrast with the usually local non-Romani guilt societies) and each party has its own truth, the krisnitorya seek mainly to restore the mutual respect between the involved parties. Their final decisions should consider a future harmony, since, according to its success and durability in time, the Romani community will consider whether they keep being qualified krisnitorya. If it is concluded that an imbalance happened and its nature and gravity make very difficult restoring the balance with reconciliation, then reparations and punishments are also considered. These may range from fines (Romani: glaba) paid by the guilty to the injured party, to the guilty party being declared marime ('unclean') for a period of time, and banished (Romani: shudine/chhudine) from the community. The period of time may be fixed, or until the guilty will pay the fine or will restore a former status quo. The most extreme sentence is for a Romani person to be declared marime for all time, and thus permanently excluded from the Romani community, a horrific fate amongst the Roma. In former times, the death sentence was also a possible punishment in some Romani groups, although it is not known to have been practiced for a very long time. If all parties are found guilty and fines are paid, usually these are given to the poor Romanies. Also the punishment may include unpaid work for the local Romani community. The injured party, also in order to reinforce the balance and restore the harmony with the guilty, may renounce a part of the reparations they are entitled to. The decisions of the kris are definitive (there are no higher Romani courts) and they are enforced by the moral pressure of the Romani community.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kris_(Romani_court)
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kalderash
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Vlax_Romani_language
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Wallachia
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Lohar
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Tinker
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Serbo-Croatian
A traditional Kalderash Roma metalsmith from Hungary in 1892
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kalderash
Kalderash Roma family in Sweden, early 20th century
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kalderash
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Servitka_Roma
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ruska_Roma
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Polska_Roma
Roma women in the Lublin ghetto, 1940
Roma in Galicia, 1895
Crowning of the "Gypsy King" in Warsaw, 1937
Crowning of the "Gypsy King" in Warsaw, 1937
Roma convoy leaving Lemberg (Lviv), 1941
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Polska_Roma
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Bergitka_Roma
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Principality_of_Transylvania_(1570%E2%80%931711)
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Treaty_of_Speyer_(1570)
A vassal[1] or liege subject[2] is a person regarded as having a mutual obligation to a lord or monarch, in the context of the feudal system in medieval Europe. While the subordinate party is called a vassal, the dominant party is called a suzerain. The rights and obligations of a vassal are called vassalage, while the rights and obligations of a suzerain are called suzerainty. The obligations of a vassal often included military support by knights in exchange for certain privileges, usually including land held as a tenant or fief.[3] The term is also applied to similar arrangements in other feudal societies.
In contrast, fealty (fidelitas) was sworn, unconditional loyalty to a monarch.[4]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Vassal
Denis of Paris | |
---|---|
Bishop and Martyr | |
Born | 3rd century Italia, Roman Empire |
Died | c. 250, 258,[1] or 270 Mons Martis, Lutetia, Roman Gaul (modern day Paris, France) |
Venerated in | Catholic Church Anglican Communion |
Major shrine | Saint Denis Basilica |
Feast | 9 October |
Attributes | A martyr carrying his severed head in his hands; a bishop's mitre; city; furnace[2] |
Patronage | Paris; against frenzy, strife, headaches, hydrophobia, San Dionisio (Parañaque), possessed people |
Denis of Paris was a 3rd-century Christian martyr and saint. According to his hagiographies, he was bishop of Paris (then Lutetia) in the third century and, together with his companions Rusticus and Eleutherius, was martyred for his faith by decapitation. Some accounts placed this during Domitian's persecution and incorrectly identified St Denis of Paris with the Areopagite who was converted by Paul the Apostle and who served as the first bishop of Athens. Assuming Denis's historicity, it is now considered more likely that he suffered under the persecution of the emperor Decius shortly after AD 250.
Denis is the most famous cephalophore in Christian legend, with a popular story claiming that the decapitated bishop picked up his head and walked several miles while preaching a sermon on repentance. He is venerated in the Catholic Church as the patron saint of France and Paris and is accounted one of the Fourteen Holy Helpers. A chapel was raised at the site of his burial by a local Christian woman; it was later expanded into an abbey and basilica, around which grew up the French city of Saint-Denis, now a suburb of Paris.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Saint_Denis_of_Paris
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Paul_the_Apostle
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Operation_Caravan
Tar is a dark brown or black viscous liquid of hydrocarbons and free carbon, obtained from a wide variety of organic materials through destructive distillation. Tar can be produced from coal, wood, petroleum, or peat.[1]
Mineral products resembling tar can be produced from fossil hydrocarbons, such as petroleum. Coal tar is produced from coal as a byproduct of coke production.
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Tar
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Pine_tar
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Charcoal
Since the Iron Age, high temperatures have had to be produced for iron smelting, for glassmaking, and for the working of precious metals. Charcoal has been used to do this for centuries and, in order to produce it, entire forests were felled. With the increasing use of stone coal from the 18th century, the charcoal burning industry declined.[citation needed]
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Charcoal_burner
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Category:Obsolete_occupations
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Category:Nazi_concentration_camp_occupations
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hurrying
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hurrying
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Ice_cutting
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Scribe
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Shorthandhttps://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Lady%27s_companion
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Court_dwarf
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Drummer_(military)
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Drummer_(military)#/media/File:Sprit_of_'76.2.jpeg
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Drysalter
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Town_crier
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Voltigeur
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Water_carrier
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Pinsetter
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Toad_doctors
https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Telegraphist
No comments:
Post a Comment